Selected quad for the lemma: cause_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
cause_n england_n king_n pope_n 3,876 5 6.8205 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A08771 A reply to a notorious libell intituled A briefe apologie or defence of the ecclesiasticall hierarchie, &c. Wherein sufficient matter is discouered to giue all men satisfaction, who lend both their eares to the question in controuersie betweene the Iesuits and their adherents on the one part, and their sæcular priests defamed by them on the other part. Whereunto is also adioyned an answere to the appendix. Charnock, Robert, b. 1561. 1603 (1603) STC 19056; ESTC S104952 321,994 410

There are 30 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

any_o money_n for_o they_o only_o they_o must_v pay_v for_o the_o sauce_n which_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o fair_a they_o must_v have_v or_o else_o they_o must_v have_v no_o goose_n o_o happy_a day_n wherein_o that_o fair_a be_v first_o institute_v and_o a_o secret_a discover_v which_o not_o catholic_a king_n or_o prelate_n can_v ever_o attain_v unto_o and_o thrice_o happy_a be_v they_o who_o by_o the_o light_n as_o it_o shall_v see_v i_o of_o that_o day_n do_v see_v to_o make_v that_o statute_n in_o the_o three_o year_n of_o the_o archipres_fw-fr byterie_n of_o m._n george_n blackwell_n vidi_fw-la prevaricantes_fw-la etc._n etc._n 18._o octob._n 1600_o wherein_o all_o right_a to_o appeal_v to_o rome_n being_n most_o catholike_o conserve_v the_o penalty_n therein_o contain_v do_v only_o light_v upon_o such_o as_o have_v set_v their_o hand_n to_o that_o which_o be_v prefix_v to_o the_o appeal_v which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o cause_n thereof_o without_o which_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n and_o canon_n of_o holy_a church_n the_o appeal_n be_v of_o no_o force_n and_o be_v therefore_o by_o name_n to_o be_v express_v as_o we_o have_v before_o show_v out_o of_o the_o clementine_n appellantide_n appellationibus_fw-la now_o it_o remain_v that_o we_o show_v when_o and_o upon_o what_o occasion_n the_o statute_n be_v make_v by_o which_o the_o provision_n from_o rome_n and_o some_o appeal_v to_o rome_n be_v forbid_v first_o concern_v these_o provision_n there_o be_v a_o statute_n make_v either_o in_o the_o 30._o or_o 35._o or_o as_o some_o other_o affirm_v 25._o edward_n 1._o which_o be_v above_o 300._o year_n since_o wherein_o it_o be_v agree_v and_o establish_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v suffer_v there_o be_v also_o the_o like_a statute_n make_v in_o the_o 25._o year_n of_o edw._n 3_o to_o the_o like_a effect_n by_o which_o it_o be_v forbid_v that_o any_o shall_v be_v place_v in_o any_o dignity_n without_o the_o assent_n of_o the_o king_n the_o same_o be_v also_o forbid_a in_o the_o parliament_n hold_v in_o the_o 38._o of_o the_o same_o king_n the_o occasion_n of_o enact_v these_o statute_n be_v set_v down_o as_o well_o in_o that_o of_o the_o 25._o of_o edw._n 1._o as_o elsewhere_o &_o the_o justice_n of_o those_o which_o be_v make_v in_o the_o time_n of_o edw._n 3._o be_v the_o more_o apparent_a by_o a_o letter_n which_o he_o and_o his_o noble_n send_v in_o the_o 17._o year_n of_o his_o reign_n to_o his_o hol._n to_o have_v redress_n for_o such_o default_n as_o be_v in_o that_o kind_n commit_v the_o letter_n be_v to_o this_o effect_n king_n edward_n and_o his_o noble_n perceive_v the_o derogation_n that_o be_v do_v to_o the_o realm_n by_o such_o reservation_n provision_n and_o collation_n of_o benefice_n as_o the_o pope_n practise_v here_o in_o england_n write_v to_o he_o require_v he_o that_o since_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v be_v found_v and_o endow_v by_o noble_a and_o worthy_a man_n to_o the_o end_n the_o people_n may_v be_v instruct_v by_o people_n of_o their_o own_o language_n and_o that_o he_o be_v so_o far_o off_o can_v not_o understand_v the_o default_n yet_o his_o predecessor_n and_o he_o more_o than_o have_v be_v use_v by_o diverse_a reservation_n provision_n and_o collation_n make_v to_o diverse_a person_n some_o stranger_n yea_o and_o some_o enemy_n to_o the_o realm_n whereby_o the_o money_n and_o profit_n be_v carry_v forth_o their_o cure_n not_o provide_v for_o according_a to_o the_o founder_n mind_n they_o therefore_o upon_o due_a consideration_n thereof_o signify_v unto_o he_o that_o they_o can_v not_o suffer_v such_o enormity_n any_o long_o and_o therefore_o beseech_v he_o to_o revoke_v such_o reservation_n provision_n and_o collation_n whole_o to_o avoid_v such_o slander_n mischief_n and_o harm_n as_o may_v ensue_v and_o that_o the_o cure_n may_v be_v commit_v to_o person_n meet_v for_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o same_o beseech_v he_o further_o without_o delay_n to_o signify_v his_o intention_n since_o they_o mean_v to_o bestow_v their_o diligence_n to_o remedy_v the_o matter_n and_o see_v that_o redress_n may_v be_v have_v give_v in_o full_a parliament_n at_o westminster_n 18._o of_o may_n anno_fw-la dom._n 1343._o thus_o far_o out_o of_o john_n stow_n 17._o edw._n 3._o where_o he_o also_o cit_v auesburie_n and_o honingford_n second_o concern_v the_o forbid_v of_o the_o appeal_n to_o rome_n we_o find_v a_o statute_n make_v in_o the_o 27._o of_o edw._n 3._o against_o those_o who_o shall_v draw_v any_o person_n in_o plea_n out_o of_o the_o realm_n of_o a_o thing_n whereof_o the_o knowledge_n appertain_v to_o the_o king_n court_n or_o of_o such_o thing_n whereof_o judgement_n be_v give_v in_o the_o king_n court_n or_o shall_v sue_v in_o any_o other_o court_v to_o defeat_v or_o let_v the_o judgement_n give_v in_o the_o king_n court._n to_o these_o and_o other_o statute_n to_o the_o like_a effect_n the_o author_n of_o the_o apology_n affirm_v that_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n neither_o do_v nor_o can_v assent_v but_o whatsoever_o may_v be_v say_v for_o or_o against_o this_o position_n concern_v the_o appeal_n no_o man_n can_v in_o reason_n think_v but_o that_o they_o both_o may_v very_o well_o and_o do_v assent_v to_o those_o statute_n which_o be_v make_v against_o the_o provision_n or_o bestow_v of_o dignity_n in_o england_n without_o the_o king_n consent_n the_o cause_n be_v so_o apparent_o lay_v down_o by_o the_o king_n and_o the_o noble_n for_o that_o abridge_n of_o his_o holiness_n his_o promote_a who_o he_o will_v and_o to_o what_o dignity_n he_o will_v in_o england_n and_o thus_o much_o may_v be_v allege_v in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o spiritual_a lord_n to_o the_o statute_n against_o those_o appeal_n that_o in_o the_o new_a great_a abridgement_n print_v anno_fw-la 1551._o there_o be_v this_o clause_n set_v to_o the_o end_n of_o some_o statute_n but_o the_o spiritual_a lord_n assent_v not_o to_o this_o statute_n and_o there_o be_v no_o such_o note_n set_v to_o any_o of_o these_o statute_n which_o we_o have_v here_o cite_v it_o be_v also_o evident_a that_o these_o statute_n be_v not_o make_v upon_o any_o heat_n of_o emulation_n against_o the_o clergy_n for_o as_o we_o find_v that_o in_o the_o 38._o year_n of_o king_n edw._n 3._o the_o statute_n against_o those_o provision_n make_v in_o the_o 25._o and_o 27._o of_o the_o same_o king_n be_v confirm_v although_o there_o be_v some_o favour_n give_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o prelate_n offender_n so_o in_o the_o 39_o year_n of_o the_o same_o king_n which_o be_v the_o next_o year_n after_o we_o find_v that_o the_o clergy_n in_o england_n be_v in_o as_o great_a honour_n as_o any_o clergy_n in_o the_o world_n as_o may_v be_v show_v by_o the_o office_n which_o the_o bishop_n and_o priest_n have_v then_o in_o england_n for_o the_o bishop_n of_o canterbury_n be_v lord_n chancellor_n of_o england_n the_o bishop_n of_o bath_n be_v l._n treasurer_n the_o archdeacon_n of_o lincoln_n be_v lord_n privy_a seal_n the_o parson_n of_o somersam_n be_v master_n of_o the_o roll_n ten_o benefice_a priest_n be_v master_n of_o the_o chancery_n the_o dean_n of_o s._n martin_n le_fw-mi grand_a be_v chief_a chancellor_n of_o the_o exchequer_n receiver_n and_o keeper_n of_o the_o king_n treasure_n and_o jewel_n the_o archd._n of_o northampton_n be_v chancellor_n of_o the_o exchequer_n a_o prebendarie_n of_o s._n martin_n be_v clerk_n of_o the_o privy_a seal_n a_o prebendarie_n of_o s._n steven_n be_v treasurer_n of_o the_o king_n house_n the_o parson_n of_o auon_n or_o oundell_n be_v master_n of_o the_o wardrobe_n the_o parson_n of_o fenny_a stanton_n be_v one_o of_o the_o chamberlain_n of_o the_o excheq_n and_o keeper_n of_o the_o king_n treasury_n and_o jewel_n other_o of_o the_o clergy_n be_v note_v to_o have_v be_v in_o office_n also_o in_o france_n &_o in_o ireland_n as_o well_o as_o in_o england_n john_n of_o gaunt_n duke_n of_o lancaster_n the_o four_o son_n of_o king_n edward_n 3_o have_v the_o government_n of_o england_n commit_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o father_n last_o sickness_n which_o be_v in_o the_o 50._o and_o 51._o of_o his_o reign_n dispose_v so_o far_o of_o matter_n and_o office_n as_o he_o conceive_v some_o possibility_n to_o attain_v to_o the_o crown_n and_o to_o deprive_v his_o nephew_n richard_n of_o bordeaux_n who_o be_v son_n to_o the_o black_a prince_n edward_n the_o elder_a son_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o three_o but_o perceive_v that_o it_o will_v be_v hard_a for_o he_o to_o obtain_v his_o purpose_n so_o long_o as_o the_o church_n stand_v in_o that_o estate_n it_o do_v and_o the_o citizeen_n of_o london_n enjoy_v their_o liberty_n he_o labour_v to_o overthrow_v they_o both_o
paris_n in_o this_o manner_n first_o there_o be_v no_o man_n to_o inform_v the_o doctor_n for_o the_o archpriest_n as_o though_o the_o doctor_n censure_n have_v not_o pass_v upon_o those_o information_n although_o no_o one_o of_o any_o side_n have_v be_v present_a the_o case_n be_v propound_v and_o they_o give_v their_o judgement_n upon_o the_o case_n and_o not_o upon_o any_o particular_a person_n if_o any_o that_o may_v have_v be_v then_o present_a for_o the_o archpriest_n can_v have_v prove_v the_o case_n to_o have_v be_v wrong_o put_v let_v it_o now_o be_v do_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v all_o one_o for_o as_o it_o be_v say_v it_o be_v the_o case_n which_o be_v censure_v which_o may_v have_v come_v out_o of_o moscovia_n for_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v set_v down_o to_o the_o contrary_a in_o the_o information_n and_o the_o decree_n be_v give_v according_a to_o the_o information_n will_v be_v justify_v notwithstanding_o this_o senseless_a and_o shameful_a edict_n 1600._o 29._o maij_fw-la 1600._o we_o george_n blackwell_n archpriest_n of_o england_n and_o protonotary_n apostolical_a etc._n etc._n do_v strict_o command_v in_o virtue_n of_o obedience_n and_o under_o pain_n of_o suspension_n from_o divine_a office_n usurper_n a_o notorious_a usurper_n and_o loss_n of_o all_o faculty_n in_o the_o fact_n itself_o to_o be_v incur_v all_o ecclesiastical_a person_n and_o also_o all_o lay_v catholic_n under_o pain_n of_o be_v interdict_v likewise_o in_o the_o fact_n itself_o to_o be_v incur_v be_v not_o this_o a_o strange_a charge_n consider_v the_o state_n in_o which_o as_o well_o the_o lay_v catholic_a as_o the_o ecclesiastical_a person_n now_o live_v in_o england_n who_o be_v it_o that_o do_v not_o expect_v a_o prohibition_n of_o some_o grievous_a crime_n you_o have_v hear_v the_o charge_n now_o listen_v to_o the_o matter_n forbid_v that_o neither_o direct_o nor_o indirect_o they_o maintain_v nor_o defend_v in_o word_n or_o write_v the_o censure_n of_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n whether_o it_o be_v true_o give_v or_o forge_v be_v there_o ever_o in_o christendom_n hear_v the_o like_a presumption_n that_o a_o man_n of_o some_o two_o or_o three_o year_n study_n and_o in_o no_o catholic_a academi●_n of_o fame_n shall_v condemn_v the_o censure_n of_o the_o most_o famous_a university_n in_o christendom_n but_o will_v you_o hear_v he_o excel_v himself_o who_o have_v excel_v the_o most_o proud_a and_o temerarious_a censurer_n in_o the_o world_n note_v that_o which_o he_o add_v whether_o upon_o true_a information_n or_o otherwise_o the_o sorbonist_n have_v spin_v a_o fair_a thread_n when_o what_o information_n soever_o be_v give_v unto_o they_o their_o censure_n be_v not_o to_o be_v regard_v the_o second_o exception_n which_o this_o author_n seem_v to_o take_v be_v that_o the_o doctor_n do_v light_o pass_v it_o over_o and_o define_v the_o matter_n in_o the_o senior_a bedels_n house_n which_o such_o as_o have_v study_v in_o paris_n do_v know_v to_o be_v the_o usual_a place_n of_o their_o meeting_n as_o stand_v most_o commodious_o for_o all_o those_o who_o be_v choose_v to_o meet_v upon_o all_o cause_n come_v to_o the_o university_n to_o be_v determine_v they_o themselves_o not_o live_v in_o any_o one_o place_n but_o scatter_o in_o the_o city_n religious_a man_n in_o their_o covent_n pastor_n in_o their_o parish_n reader_n and_o other_o doctor_n in_o their_o several_a house_n or_o college_n how_o light_o they_o pass_v it_o over_o i_o know_v not_o neither_o be_v the_o matter_n of_o any_o such_o difficulty_n in_o itself_o that_o it_o shall_v ask_v great_a study_n but_o it_o be_v a_o argument_n that_o they_o be_v not_o over_o careless_a what_o they_o say_v who_o command_v the_o bedell_n to_o write_v it_o down_o as_o their_o definition_n in_o such_o wise_a as_o every_o thing_n else_o do_v pass_v they_o in_o their_o consultation_n of_o great_a matter_n the_o three_o exception_n be_v that_o it_o be_v give_v upon_o some_o sinistrous_a information_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o doctor_n do_v prudent_o give_v their_o censure_n in_o this_o manner_n they_o commit_v no_o sin_n at_o all_o in_o that_o fact_n in_o itself_o consider_v and_o that_o they_o add_v these_o word_n for_o that_o they_o know_v not_o what_o scandal_n evil_a example_n sedition_n and_o contention_n and_o hurt_n to_o the_o common_a cause_n have_v ensue_v thereof_o have_v this_o author_n in_o place_n of_o this_o word_n thereof_o put_v after_o he_o have_v do_v more_o wise_o as_o i_o think_v for_o in_o that_o he_o use_v this_o word_n thereof_o either_o he_o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v very_o sottish_a or_o else_o that_o the_o university_n be_v very_o unaduised_a in_o add_v these_o word_n that_o fact_n in_o itself_o consider_v for_o which_o word_n this_o author_n commend_v their_o wisdom_n for_o if_o the_o fact_n in_o itself_o be_v such_o as_o so_o much_o hurt_n do_v ensue_v thereof_o how_o can_v the_o fact_n in_o itself_o be_v clear_v from_o all_o sin_n true_a it_o be_v that_o scandal_n follow_v after_o but_o it_o yet_o remain_v unprove_v that_o it_o ensue_v upon_o the_o priest_n fact_n do_v not_o much_o hurt_n come_v after_o much_o good_a and_o shall_v we_o say_v that_o the_o harm_n ensue_v upon_o the_o do_n of_o the_o good_a in_o such_o sense_n as_o that_o the_o good_a which_o be_v do_v must_v be_v a_o necessary_a cause_n of_o the_o evil_a which_o have_v not_o perchance_o otherwise_o be_v the_o fact_n then_o in_o itself_o consider_v be_v without_o sin_n we_o be_v to_o seek_v who_o sow_v the_o zizania_fw-la which_o perchance_o have_v never_o be_v sow_v where_o it_o be_v have_v not_o the_o husbandman_n sow_v good_a corn_n before_o the_o priest_n perceive_v what_o be_v intend_v and_o be_v likely_a to_o fall_v upon_o they_o if_o they_o seek_v not_o some_o mean_n to_o prevent_v it_o send_v two_o of_o their_o brethren_n unto_o his_o holiness_n to_o prevent_v it_o if_o they_o may_v for_o contrary_a to_o all_o custom_n in_o christendom_n there_o be_v a_o superiority_n challenge_v over_o all_o england_n and_o scotland_n as_o derive_v from_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a without_o any_o letter_n from_o the_o say_a sea_n for_o warrant_v thereof_o and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o priest_n defer_v their_o submission_n to_o the_o authority_n as_o well_o upon_o this_o cause_n as_o other_o contain_v in_o the_o information_n to_o the_o doctor_n of_o sorbon_n the_o jesuit_n and_o their_o faction_n of_o which_o the_o archpriest_n be_v now_o become_v the_o head_n be_v impatient_a of_o delay_n and_o because_o the_o priest_n do_v not_o subject_v themselves_o in_o this_o interim_n but_o stay_v their_o submission_n until_o they_o do_v see_v the_o pope_n letter_n they_o first_o use_v their_o tongue_n than_o their_o pen_n and_o both_o writ_n and_o approve_a seditious_a libel_n against_o the_o priest_n term_v they_o therein_o schismatic_n excommunicate_a person_n irregular_a fall_v from_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o what_o not_o that_o malice_n itself_o can_v devise_v from_o which_o slander_n while_o the_o priest_n seek_v to_o defend_v themselves_o great_a trouble_n have_v rise_v in_o england_n now_o than_o the_o question_n must_v be_v whether_o the_o priest_n be_v the_o sinful_a cause_n of_o these_o contention_n by_o this_o their_o forbearance_n to_o subject_v themselves_o before_o they_o see_v the_o pope_n letter_n or_o rather_o the_o jesuite_n and_o archpriest_n by_o those_o their_o seditious_a and_o sinful_a tongue_n and_o libel_n the_o fact_n of_o the_o priest_n in_o itself_o consider_v that_o be_v their_o forbearance_n upon_o such_o cause_n say_v the_o doctor_n and_o prudent_o say_v this_o author_n be_v no_o sin_n at_o all_o but_o the_o doctor_n be_v not_o true_o inform_v say_v this_o author_n and_o therefore_o their_o sentence_n be_v of_o no_o force_n but_o what_o then_o be_v the_o defect_n in_o the_o information_n give_v to_o the_o doctor_n through_o which_o the_o doctor_n be_v think_v to_o have_v err_v in_o their_o sentence_n forsooth_o first_o the_o priest_n do_v not_o tell_v they_o that_o the_o card._n be_v protector_n of_o the_o nation_n what_o if_o the_o priest_n do_v not_o know_v that_o he_o be_v protector_n of_o the_o nation_n when_o his_o letter_n come_v into_o england_n but_o only_a protector_n of_o the_o english_a college_n at_o rome_n as_o his_o predecessor_n be_v entitle_v and_o never_o know_v by_o any_o other_o title_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o bull_n of_o pope_n gregory_n 13._o for_o the_o institution_n of_o that_o college_n and_o the_o thesis_n either_o in_o philosophy_n or_o divinity_n which_o be_v in_o the_o public_a exercise_n dedicate_v unto_o he_o moreover_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o this_o which_o this_o card._n protector_n do_v he_o do_v it_o by_o a_o delegation_n from_o his_o hol._n and_o not_o as_o a_o protector_n and_o therefore_o it_o have_v be_v
in_o the_o margin_n of_o this_o sedition_n m._n collington_n and_o m._n charnocke_v by_o his_o own_o confession_n he_o may_v better_o have_v make_v this_o note_n in_o the_o margin_n the_o first_o finder_n out_o of_o this_o most_o wicked_a and_o seditious_a plot_n of_o the_o jesuit_n m._n collington_n etc._n etc._n they_o as_o be_v say_v be_v first_o call_v and_o in_o post_n haste_v they_o be_v send_v for_o and_o m._n heburne_n to_o give_v their_o like_n and_o we_o say_v the_o apology_n repeat_v m_n charnock_v answer_v have_v read_v the_o card._n protector_n letter_n begin_v to_o doubt_v not_o so_o much_o of_o the_o authority_n itself_o that_o be_v that_o the_o cardinal_n have_v appoint_v such_o a_o thing_n for_o so_o do_v this_o apology_n confess_v fol_z 129._o that_o m._n charnocke_v acknowledge_v this_o order_n to_o have_v be_v appoint_v by_o card._n caietane_n neither_o do_v m._n charnocke_v his_o letter_n of_o the_o 20_o of_o february_n cite_v and_o abuse_v by_o these_o fellow_n prove_v that_o after_o he_o think_v any_o other_o then_o that_o it_o be_v the_o cardinal_n do_v notwithstanding_o that_o the_o jesuit_n labour_v to_o have_v he_o write_v that_o it_o be_v the_o pope_n order_n and_o will_v sometime_o make_v bold_a with_o this_o where_o the_o law_n be_v in_o their_o own_o hand_n as_o of_o the_o good_a manner_n of_o procure_v it_o they_o perceive_v that_o it_o be_v get_v by_o surreption_n which_o be_v a_o sufficient_a cause_n to_o except_v against_o it_o whereby_o also_o it_o may_v appear_v how_o ignorant_o this_o fellow_n cumber_v his_o margin_n where_o he_o have_v make_v this_o note_n ergo_fw-la not_o doubt_v you_o be_v bind_v to_o obey_v for_o first_o m._n charn_n do_v not_o say_v that_o they_o have_v no_o doubt_n of_o the_o authority_n itself_o but_o that_o they_o doubt_v not_o so_o much_o of_o the_o authority_n itself_o as_o of_o the_o good_a manner_n of_o procure_v it_o for_o they_o see_v it_o evident_o that_o it_o be_v a_o ordinance_n of_o the_o cardinal_n under_o his_o hand_n and_o seal_v though_o in_o a_o private_a letter_n to_o m._n blackwell_n and_o his_o word_n be_v plain_a dum_fw-la haec_fw-la nostra_fw-la ordinatio_fw-la duraverit_fw-la so_o long_o as_o this_o ordinance_n shall_v endure_v yet_o know_v how_o this_o cardinal_n be_v carry_v in_o our_o english_a affair_n by_o the_o jesuite_n it_o be_v neither_o felony_n nor_o treason_n to_o think_v he_o may_v stretch_v himself_o to_o pleasure_v they_o and_o if_o the_o matter_n have_v be_v handle_v with_o any_o indifferency_n doubtless_o neither_o these_o two_o nor_o any_o other_o will_v ever_o have_v call_v the_o matter_n in_o question_n but_o there_o be_v a_o notorious_a partiality_n descry_v in_o this_o order_n and_o such_o as_o may_v be_v the_o overthrow_n of_o our_o afflict_a church_n in_o england_n the_o priest_n have_v reason_n to_o make_v some_o stop_n at_o the_o first_o discovery_n thereof_o as_o just_o they_o may_v have_v do_v although_o they_o have_v not_o doubt_v at_o all_o but_o that_o it_o be_v ordain_v by_o his_o holiness_n appointment_n or_o by_o his_o holiness_n letter_n there_o be_v sufficient_a cause_n to_o persuade_v they_o that_o it_o be_v get_v by_o surreption_n which_o do_v vitiate_v or_o make_v void_a his_o holiness_n letter_n as_o m._n collington_n prove_v evident_o in_o his_o first_o reason_n and_o consequent_o the_o priest_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o obey_v it_o and_o the_o less_o for_o that_o they_o prepare_v themselves_o to_o go_v to_o rome_n to_o deal_v with_o his_o holiness_n thereabouts_o and_o in_o such_o manner_n as_o be_v set_v down_o and_o acknowledge_v in_o this_o apology_n fol._n 129._o out_o of_o m._n charnockes_n examination_n and_o the_o partiality_n which_o be_v urge_v by_o m._n charnocke_n as_o just_o fear_v by_o m._n blackwell_n be_v declare_v every_o where_o by_o the_o priest_n to_o be_v this_o that_o the_o jesuite_n who_o be_v the_o chief_a head_n of_o sedition_n and_o faction_n in_o england_n against_o the_o priest_n be_v now_o become_v their_o judge_n and_o executioner_n in_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o secular_a priest_n and_o no_o way_n subject_a to_o any_o order_n which_o be_v pretend_v to_o have_v be_v take_v for_o peace_n between_o they_o &_o the_o priest_n and_o these_o to_o their_o judgment_n seem_v serious_a and_o grave_a cause_n not_o to_o yield_v themselves_o at_o the_o beginning_n which_o their_o not_o yield_v this_o author_n term_v a_o opposition_n here_o we_o see_v say_v he_o how_o serious_a and_o grave_a the_o cause_n be_v of_o this_o opposition_n at_o the_o beginning_n and_o how_o at_o the_o first_o they_o do_v not_o doubt_v of_o the_o authority_n itself_o nor_o of_o the_o pope_n will_v therein_o as_o after_o they_o have_v pretend_v where_o be_v this_o see_v or_o where_o be_v any_o mention_n of_o any_o such_o persuasion_n that_o the_o pope_n will_n be_v know_v therein_o or_o that_o the_o priest_n do_v not_o doubt_v thereof_o this_o fellow_n must_v needs_o borrow_v leave_n now_o and_o then_o to_o play_v with_o his_o blind_a obedient_a and_o make_v they_o believe_v that_o they_o do_v see_v that_o which_o himself_o do_v not_o nor_o can_v see_v for_o in_o this_o answer_n of_o m._n charnocke_n there_o be_v nothing_o concern_v the_o pope_n but_o only_o the_o cardinal_n protector_n letter_n by_o which_o the_o authority_n be_v institute_v by_o he_o and_o may_v have_v be_v think_v to_o have_v be_v authentical_o do_v if_o he_o have_v any_o commission_n from_o his_o holiness_n or_o not_o authentical_o do_v if_o he_o have_v none_o so_o that_o no_o commission_n appear_v the_o priest_n may_v just_o doubt_v thereof_o although_o not_o so_o much_o as_o of_o the_o other_o to_o wit_n the_o manner_n of_o procure_v it_o which_o they_o may_v perceive_v be_v by_o surreption_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n m._n charnocke_n say_v not_o that_o they_o doubt_v not_o at_o all_o at_o the_o first_o of_o the_o authority_n itself_o nor_o of_o the_o pope_n will_v therein_o as_o this_o author_n do_v most_o false_o suggest_v but_o this_o only_a we_o have_v read_v the_o cardinal_n protector_n letter_n begin_v to_o doubt_v not_o so_o much_o of_o the_o authority_n itself_o as_o of_o the_o good_a manner_n of_o procure_v it_o as_o in_o the_o same_o page_n this_o author_n himself_o set_v down_o m._n charnockes_n answer_n but_o yet_o note_v another_o slippery_a part_n of_o this_o fellow_n he_o cit_v m._n charnockes_n answer_n concern_v what_o be_v do_v the_o first_o day_n that_o the_o authority_n be_v make_v know_v unto_o they_o in_o which_o you_o see_v how_o he_o abuse_v his_o reader_n in_o prove_v thereby_o the_o smallness_n of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o priest_n but_o he_o cease_v not_o here_o for_o he_o conclude_v in_o this_o manner_n we_o see_v also_o that_o the_o priest_n can_v not_o be_v many_o nor_o of_o great_a account_n that_o resolve_v this_o embassage_n to_o rome_n and_o good_a sir_n how_o do_v you_o see_v this_o forsooth_o m._n charnocke_v say_v that_o the_o chief_a priest_n that_o deal_v with_o he_o and_o m._n bishop_n were_z m._n collington_n m._n cope_n m_o johnson_n m._n monford_n and_o other_o and_o can_v not_o many_o be_v include_v in_o that_o word_n other_o nor_o man_n of_o great_a account_n if_o these_o that_o be_v name_v be_v of_o no_o great_a account_n be_v not_o this_o apparent_o a_o odious_a manner_n of_o writing_n i_o can_v retort_v the_o phrase_n and_o show_v that_o some_o of_o these_o that_o be_v name_v and_o other_o not_z named_z yet_o comprehend_v in_o this_o word_n other_o be_v such_o as_o for_o their_o merit_n and_o labour_n in_o god_n church_n can_v hardly_o be_v match_v by_o all_o the_o faction_n which_o be_v against_o they_o but_o we_o will_v leave_v this_o fellow_n tumble_v in_o his_o own_o dirt_n and_o please_v himself_o in_o his_o folly_n howsoever_o he_o displease_v man_n of_o judgement_n who_o have_v often_o difficulty_n whether_o they_o may_v better_o lament_v he_o who_o by_o this_o continuance_n therein_o give_v a_o earnest_a penny_n that_o other_o lamentation_n will_v nothing_o profit_v he_o or_o laugh_v at_o he_o who_o folly_n be_v without_o measure_n and_o still_o proceed_v from_o folly_n to_o folly_n but_o now_o that_o he_o have_v proper_o let_v his_o reader_n see_v that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v many_o nor_o of_o great_a account_n that_o resolve_v of_o the_o embassage_n to_o rome_n he_o will_v prove_v that_o the_o mission_n and_o commission_n be_v not_o authentical_a because_o m._n bishop_n who_o be_v one_o of_o they_o that_o be_v send_v affirm_v that_o he_o do_v not_o know_v who_o be_v the_o first_o author_n of_o this_o mission_n nor_o why_o they_o two_o be_v choose_v above_o the_o rest_n for_o this_o mission_n as_o though_o a_o matter_n may_v not_o be_v as_o lawful_o take_v in_o hand_n by_o one_o who_o
the_o king_n give_v it_o to_o he_o under_o his_o hand_n and_o broad_a seal_n which_o convince_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v the_o motive_n of_o make_v those_o statute_n all_o provision_n of_o dignity_n from_o rome_n be_v forbid_v and_o not_o those_o only_o which_o have_v temporal_a live_n annex_v unto_o they_o and_o hereby_o also_o may_v it_o be_v see_v how_o ready_a these_o fellow_n be_v to_o interpret_v other_o man_n word_n in_o the_o worst_a sense_n which_o they_o may_v &_o affirm_v most_o peremptory_o that_o the_o speaker_n or_o writer_n have_v those_o sense_n which_o it_o most_o please_v their_o adversary_n to_o give_v they_o and_o thus_o much_o for_o this_o point_n only_o this_o be_v to_o be_v add_v that_o although_o this_o new_a manifester_n of_o spirit_n have_v in_o this_o place_n recant_v somewhat_o of_o his_o rashness_n utter_v in_o the_o apol._n cap._n 2._o fol._n 15._o concern_v the_o chief_a purpose_n of_o those_o statute_n of_o praemunire_n yet_o he_o have_v leave_v somewhat_o in_o this_o manifestation_n of_o spirit_n which_o he_o must_v in_o some_o other_o place_n recant_v or_o show_v himself_o a_o very_a obstinate_a impostor_n that_o be_v concern_v the_o time_n of_o the_o enact_v those_o statute_n which_o be_v long_o before_o the_o time_n in_o which_o he_o here_o say_v they_o be_v make_v as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o book_n of_o statute_n the_o second_o shift_n be_v as_o apparent_a as_o this_o for_o although_o many_o man_n in_o the_o world_n may_v say_v as_o much_o as_o the_o archpriest_n say_v in_o diverse_a case_n wherein_o appeal_v be_v cut_v off_o by_o his_o holiness_n consent_n and_o order_n yet_o no_o man_n in_o the_o world_n who_o profess_v to_o be_v a_o catholic_a will_v say_v it_o and_o stand_v peremptory_o in_o it_o without_o some_o warrant_n by_o this_o clause_n in_o their_o commission_n appellatione_fw-la remota_fw-la or_o to_o that_o effect_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o commission_n which_o m._n blackwell_n have_v as_o may_v appear_v to_o those_o who_o will_v read_v over_o the_o cardinal_n caietane_n his_o letter_n by_o which_o he_o make_v he_o a_o archpr_fw-la and_o superior_a over_o the_o seminary_n priest_n reside_v in_o england_n and_o scotland_n 20_o cap._n 9_o fol._n 123._o there_o be_v letter_n of_o the_o 18._o of_o march_n 1598._o from_o flanders_n bring_v out_o against_o the_o two_o priest_n that_o go_v from_o england_n to_o rome_n about_o a_o authority_n not_o then_o know_v in_o england_n as_o by_o the_o date_n of_o the_o letter_n of_o institution_n it_o may_v be_v evident_o gather_v which_o be_v at_o rome_n 7._o martij_fw-la 1598._o 21_o fol._n 125._o 126._o 127._o there_o be_v letter_n bring_v out_o to_o prove_v that_o his_o holiness_n be_v provoke_v by_o they_o to_o imprison_v the_o two_o priest_n whereas_o the_o date_n of_o the_o first_o of_o they_o be_v after_o the_o date_n of_o f._n bellarmine_n now_o cardinal_n his_o letter_n to_o f._n parson_n wherein_o he_o signify_v that_o his_o holiness_n have_v that_o resolution_n if_o they_o come_v to_o ferrara_n for_o his_o letter_n bear_v date_n the_o 17._o of_o october_n 1598._o as_o appear_v fol._n 120._o apol._n and_o the_o first_o of_o the_o other_o letter_n be_v from_o douai_n 25._o octobr._n 1598._o as_o appear_v fol._n 125._o 22_o fol._n 132._o imposture_n a_o most_o audacious_a imposture_n it_o be_v say_v that_o m._n charnocke_v say_v and_o swear_v before_o that_o their_o only_a come_n be_v to_o supplicate_v etc._n etc._n whereas_o there_o be_v no_o such_o matter_n say_v or_o swear_v by_o m._n charnocke_n as_o may_v appear_v fol._n 129._o where_o his_o oath_n be_v put_v down_o without_o this_o word_n only_o which_o be_v here_o thrust_v in_o by_o the_o author_n for_o his_o purpose_n 23_o fol._n 128._o information_n f._n parson_n exhortation_n be_v the_o student_n only_a information_n the_o whole_a english_a college_n be_v say_v to_o have_v know_v what_o pass_v at_o rome_n in_o this_o matter_n when_o the_o two_o priest_n be_v there_o detain_v prisoner_n which_o no_o one_o be_v present_a at_o any_o thing_n which_o pass_v be_v a_o most_o gross_a and_o impudent_a imposture_n 24_o cap._n 10._o fol._n 141._o it_o be_v affirm_v that_o the_o two_o priest_n who_o be_v detain_v as_o prisoner_n at_o rome_n be_v present_o set_v at_o liberty_n upon_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o breve_fw-la and_o assurance_n that_o neither_o they_o nor_o any_o of_o their_o side_n in_o england_n will_v ever_o stir_v more_o in_o these_o affair_n which_o may_v evident_o appear_v to_o be_v most_o false_a for_o the_o breve_fw-la be_v bring_v unto_o they_o within_o two_o or_o three_o day_n after_o the_o date_n thereof_o which_o be_v 6._o aprilis_fw-la and_o the_o whole_a college_n will_v witness_v that_o one_o of_o they_o be_v not_o set_v at_o liberty_n until_o the_o 6._o of_o may_n follow_v although_o the_o other_o have_v this_o liberty_n upon_o the_o 22._o of_o april_n 25_o fol._n 143._o dulness_n a_o marucilous_a presumption_n of_o the_o blind_a reader_n his_o dulness_n there_o be_v very_o good_a use_n make_v of_o the_o false_a date_v of_o the_o breve_fw-la which_o be_v know_v to_o have_v be_v upon_o the_o six_o of_o april_n 1599_o and_o not_o long_o before_o that_o be_v fol._n 140._o it_o be_v twice_o so_o cite_v yet_o here_o for_o the_o credit_n of_o f._n parson_n the_o reader_n must_v take_v the_o breve_fw-la to_o bear_v date_n the_o 21._o of_o the_o say_a month_n 26_o fol._n 154._o lorraine_n this_o author_n shall_v have_v show_v what_o mean_v m._n char._n have_v to_o live_v in_o lorraine_n it_o be_v say_v that_o m._n charnock_n be_v at_o paris_n it_o be_v there_o resolve_v that_o he_o shall_v go_v into_o england_n under_o pretence_n of_o lack_n of_o mean_n to_o live_v abroad_o and_o that_o only_a for_o fashion_n sake_n he_o shall_v advise_v card._n burghesius_n which_o be_v very_o false_a as_o the_o principal_a of_o our_o nation_n then_o live_v in_o lorraine_n can_v testify_v m._n charnock_n have_v be_v there_o almost_o a_o year_n and_o never_o receive_v any_o thing_n from_o they_o who_o confine_v he_o there_o nor_o from_o england_n notwithstanding_o he_o have_v write_v diverse_a time_n both_o to_o rome_n and_o into_o england_n for_o some_o maintenance_n as_o some_o of_o they_o have_v testify_v in_o their_o letter_n to_o the_o archpr._n date_v the_o 11._o of_o april_n 1600._o from_o liverdune_n 27_o fol._n 168._o controversy_n a_o shameless_a disse●…ling_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o these_o present_a controversy_n this_o author_n inveigh_v bitter_o against_o the_o priest_n and_o will_v have_v his_o reader_n most_o ridiculous_o to_o think_v that_o the_o priest_n have_v no_o just_a cause_n to_o stir_v as_o now_o they_o do_v but_o that_o they_o take_v occasion_n as_o he_o say_v upon_o a_o angry_a epistle_n of_o the_o archpriest_n unto_o they_o and_o most_o impudent_o quote_v a_o place_n in_o the_o priest_n book_n to_o his_o holilines_n pag._n 62._o where_o his_o reader_n may_v see_v that_o the_o content_n of_o that_o epistle_n be_v a_o publication_n that_o they_o be_v schismatik_n and_o that_o he_o have_v receive_v such_o a_o resolution_n from_o rome_n which_o we_o leave_v to_o any_o indifferent_a man_n to_o judge_v whether_o it_o be_v a_o just_a cause_n for_o the_o priest_n to_o stir_v for_o the_o purge_n themselves_o of_o this_o wicked_a slander_n 28_o fol._n 177._o this_o author_n bold_o demand_v touch_v the_o two_o priest_n who_o be_v imprison_v at_o rome_n among_o other_o question_n all_o which_o will_v be_v answer_v in_o their_o place_n have_v they_o not_o licence_n after_o all_o examination_n make_v to_o go_v and_o speak_v with_o his_o holiness_n if_o they_o will_v whereas_o all_o the_o english_a nation_n then_o in_o rome_n will_v testify_v that_o they_o be_v keep_v close_a prisoner_n long_o after_o their_o examination_n be_v make_v and_o the_o one_o not_o dismiss_v out_o of_o prison_n until_o two_o day_n after_o that_o the_o other_o be_v depart_v from_o rome_n by_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o be_v not_o together_o at_o liberty_n after_o their_o first_o imprisonment_n nor_o license_v to_o go_v to_o speak_v with_o his_o hol._n 29_o cap._n 13._o fol._n 201._o it_o be_v affirm_v that_o m._n bensted_n be_v pursue_v so_o narrow_o up_o and_o down_o london_n soon_o after_o conference_n with_o d._n bagshaw_n as_o he_o be_v take_v near_o the_o tower_n and_o soon_o after_o make_v away_o in_o recompense_n of_o this_o his_o contradiction_n to_o the_o d._n suggestion_n a_o most_o malicious_a suggestion_n for_o so_o good_a friend_n say_v this_o fellow_n in_o this_o place_n be_v the_o persecutor_n unto_o they_o as_o none_o that_o dissent_n or_o disagree_v from_o they_o shall_v find_v any_o favour_n and_o to_o make_v this_o narration_n seem_v the_o more_o probable_a the_o priest_n himself_o be_v bring_v
leave_v out_o so_o memorable_a a_o abridgement_n of_o so_o many_o impertinent_a and_o false_a matter_n and_o so_o well_o suit_v with_o the_o apology_n i_o call_v all_o that_o impertinent_a which_o concern_v any_o division_n either_o of_o jesuite_n and_o other_o catholic_n of_o the_o clergy_n or_o of_o the_o laity_n before_o the_o come_n of_o the_o cardinal_n caietans_n letter_n for_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o archpriest_n in_o the_o year_n 1598._o or_o the_o ambitious_a attempt_n of_o the_o know_v and_o covert_a jesuite_n in_o the_o scandalous_a division_n in_o wisbich_n for_o upon_o the_o not_o yield_v of_o some_o secular_a priest_n to_o subject_v themselves_o first_o to_o the_o jesuite_n in_o direct_a term_n and_o the_o not_o admit_v of_o a_o authority_n procure_v by_o they_o afterward_o for_o their_o indirect_a soveraintie_n this_o present_a controversy_n begin_v and_o be_v once_o end_v at_o the_o sight_n of_o a_o breve_fw-la it_o be_v renew_v again_o by_o the_o rashness_n of_o the_o jesuite_n and_o the_o indiscretion_n of_o the_o archpriest_n as_o it_o be_v prove_v at_o large_a in_o the_o book_n set_v out_o by_o the_o secular_a priest_n and_o promulgate_v in_o the_o latter_a breve_fw-la date_v the_o 17._o of_o august_n 1601._o as_o shall_v hereafter_o be_v show_v i_o affirm_v the_o rest_n to_o be_v false_a because_o so_o it_o shall_v be_v prove_v for_o so_o much_o as_o be_v touch_v thereof_o either_o in_o the_o apology_n or_o in_o this_o epistle_n omit_v therefore_o what_o be_v here_o propound_v to_o his_o holiness_n concern_v the_o catholic_n their_o go_v to_o the_o protestant_n church_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o her_o majesty_n reign_n who_o now_o be_v a_o thing_n which_o will_v not_o have_v be_v publish_v to_o the_o world_n by_o any_o who_o tender_v their_o honour_n unless_o there_o have_v be_v some_o great_a cause_n for_o it_o the_o subornation_n of_o some_o by_o the_o counsel_n to_o poison_v d._n allen_n afterwards_o cardinal_n and_o the_o student_n &_o raise_v of_o sedition_n among_o the_o catholic_n beyond_o the_o sea_n the_o evil_a success_n which_o some_o have_v about_o the_o queen_n of_o scot_n and_o diverse_a gentleman_n which_o be_v here_o attribute_v to_o their_o secret_a keep_n of_o their_o practice_n from_o fa._n parson_n and_o other_o the_o induce_n of_o two_o priest_n to_o write_v two_o book_n in_o favour_n of_o heretic_n as_o it_o be_v by_o reason_n of_o state_n and_o to_o become_v spy_n the_o one_o in_o france_n the_o other_o in_o spain_n last_o to_o let_v pass_v that_o which_o be_v here_o say_v that_o car._n allen_n perceive_v that_o there_o be_v a_o faction_n begin_v in_o england_n by_o the_o same_o act_n of_o the_o counsel_n against_o the_o father_n of_o the_o society_n and_o write_v most_o earnest_o against_o it_o &_o that_o card._n sega_n have_v find_v out_o that_o a_o few_o unquiet_a spirit_n be_v set_v on_o crafty_o by_o the_o subtle_a instrument_n of_o the_o counsel_n &_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o many_o trouble_n in_o that_o college_n at_o rome_n we_o will_v here_o only_o touch_v such_o point_n as_o do_v concern_v ourselves_o and_o the_o matter_n now_o in_o controversy_n your_o holiness_n therefore_o say_v this_o author_n see_v prudent_o these_o cause_n and_o effect_n and_o have_v put_v a_o final_a end_n to_o the_o long_a and_o fastidicus_n trouble_v of_o the_o english_a roman_a college_n &_o give_v your_o straight_a commandment_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n to_o such_o person_n of_o the_o tumultuous_a as_o depart_v into_o england_n in_o that_o year_n 1597_o to_o be_v quiet_a for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v &_o to_o have_v peace_n with_o all_o but_o namely_o with_o the_o father_n of_o the_o society_n and_o hear_v notwithstanding_o the_o next_o year_n after_o by_o diverse_a letter_n out_o of_o england_n that_o this_o be_v not_o observe_v but_o new_a mean_n rather_o devise_v of_o further_a division_n and_o sedition_n your_o holiness_n do_v upon_o these_o consideration_n and_o upon_o the_o letter_n and_o request_n of_o diverse_a of_o the_o grave_a priest_n of_o our_o nation_n which_o after_o we_o shall_v cite_v ordain_v by_o the_o card._n protector_n his_o letter_n a_o easy_a and_o sweet_a subordination_n etc._n etc._n if_o we_o have_v no_o other_o proof_n of_o this_o fellow_n falsehood_n then_o may_v be_v make_v apparent_a in_o this_o second_o point_n of_o the_o epistle_n it_o will_v give_v every_o honest_a man_n sufficient_a satisfaction_n his_o holiness_n be_v here_o put_v in_o mind_n of_o such_o strange_a matter_n and_o his_o wisdom_n very_o high_o commend_v upon_o so_o false_a ground_n as_o if_o this_o epistle_n have_v be_v ever_o deliver_v unto_o he_o he_o will_v speedy_o have_v discover_v a_o notable_a sycophancy_n he_o be_v here_o tell_v of_o two_o principal_a motive_n for_o his_o ordain_v our_o easy_a and_o sweet_a subordination_n the_o one_o be_v certain_a letter_n which_o signify_v that_o between_o the_o tumultuous_a who_o depart_v into_o england_n in_o the_o year_n 1597_o and_o the_o father_n of_o the_o society_n there_o be_v not_o that_o peace_n which_o he_o have_v command_v but_o new_a mean_n rather_o devise_v of_o further_a division_n and_o sedition_n the_o other_o be_v other_o letter_n and_o request_n of_o diverse_a of_o the_o grave_a priest_n of_o our_o nation_n which_o after_o say_v he_o we_o shall_v cite_v concern_v the_o first_o lest_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o error_n in_o judgement_n what_o those_o new_a mean_n of_o further_a division_n shall_v be_v there_o be_v this_o note_n in_o the_o margin_n the_o new_a association_n which_o conceit_n be_v deliver_v in_o plain_a term_n and_o more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o apol._n fol._n 6._o in_o this_o manner_n but_o the_o relic_n of_o those_o that_o have_v be_v troublesome_a and_o unquiet_a before_o their_o come_n into_o england_n and_o confer_v again_o with_o their_o consort_n of_o their_o former_a action_n and_o designment_n frustrate_v as_o they_o think_v by_o f._n parson_n deal_v at_o rome_n resolve_v to_o begin_v again_o but_o after_o another_o fashion_n to_o wit_n by_o devise_v a_o certain_a new_a association_n among_o themselves_o etc._n etc._n and_o in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n fol._n 13_o his_o holiness_n hear_v of_o certain_a new_a association_n begin_v in_o england_n soon_o after_o the_o tumult_n end_v in_o rome_n etc._n etc._n these_o to_o omit_v other_o place_n in_o the_o apology_n be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v that_o his_o intention_n be_v to_o make_v the_o pope_n believe_v that_o the_o association_n which_o be_v begin_v in_o england_n by_o the_o secular_a priest_n be_v a_o new_a devise_n of_o those_o who_o be_v send_v from_o rome_n in_o the_o year_n 1597_o as_o tumultuous_a and_o unquiet_a person_n that_o this_o be_v a_o mere_a delude_n of_o his_o holiness_n all_o who_o be_v then_o in_o england_n can_v very_o well_o testify_v yea_o f._n parson_n himself_o will_v do_v we_o the_o favour_n i_o be_o sure_a to_o say_v this_o be_v a_o very_a false_a tale_n who_o understand_v at_o his_o first_o come_v to_o rome_n by_o m._n james_n standish_n that_o such_o a_o association_n have_v be_v long_o before_o intend_v and_o consequent_o can_v not_o be_v a_o device_n of_o such_o as_o thought_n themselves_o frustrate_v of_o their_o designment_n by_o his_o deal_n in_o rome_n the_o 6._o assistant_n in_o their_o letter_n of_o the_o 2._o of_o may_v 1601._o do_v testify_v that_o this_o association_n begin_v four_o or_o five_o year_n since_o cap._n 7._o apol._n fol._n 90._o and_o that_o must_v needs_o be_v before_o those_o priest_n come_v into_o england_n on_o who_o it_o be_v father_v if_o it_o be_v true_a which_o be_v say_v cap._n 2._o apol._n fol._n 12_o that_o they_o be_v not_o go_v from_o rome_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o september_n 1597._o it_o may_v also_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o same_o chapter_n fol._n 89._o that_o this_o association_n very_o probable_o be_v begin_v long_o before_o by_o other_o for_o there_o we_o find_v this_o story_n but_o m._n much_o return_v into_o england_n as_o he_o go_v forth_o and_o the_o cardinal_n soon_o after_o die_v in_o the_o year_n 1594._o as_o appear_v cap._n 1._o apol_n fol_z 6._o he_o join_v with_o another_o of_o his_o own_o humour_n etc._n etc._n and_o they_o two_o with_o some_o few_o other_o determine_v to_o make_v a_o certain_a new_a hierarchy_n of_o their_o own_o call_v it_o a_o association_n of_o clergy_n man_n etc._n etc._n the_o truth_n be_v that_o m._n much_o and_o m._n dudley_n have_v make_v the_o peace_n at_o wisbich_n in_o the_o year_n 1595._o as_o appear_v ca._n 6._o apol_n fol._n 79._o return_v to_o london_n and_o there_o deal_v with_o m._n james_n standish_n a_o man_n grow_v in_o deed_n into_o that_o humour_n to_o wit_n of_o be_v a_o jesuit_n which_o m._n much_o be_v then_o leave_v and_o not_o with_o
to_o the_o 2._o and_o 11._o chap._n of_o the_o apol._n where_o he_o do_v too-much_o discredit_v himself_o as_o shall_v be_v there_o show_v but_o lest_o the_o reader_n shall_v conceive_v according_a to_o the_o broadnesse_n of_o these_o term_n we_o will_v here_o only_o note_v the_o proposition_n which_o he_o term_v scandalous_a and_o temerarious_a and_o so_o leave_v they_o until_o their_o place_n come_v to_o be_v defend_v authority_n be_v not_o a_o infallible_a rule_n of_o truth_n in_o all_o who_o have_v authority_n no_o man_n be_v bind_v in_o all_o thing_n to_o believe_v or_o execute_v what_o every_o man_n in_o authority_n over_o he_o shall_v put_v upon_o he_o archpriest_n and_o their_o superior_n also_o the_o archdeacon_n and_o other_o of_o high_a degree_n have_v do_v amiss_o and_o swerve_v from_o the_o truth_n and_o who_o upon_o earth_n be_v warrant_v from_o err_a but_o one_o and_o not_o he_o in_o all_o thing_n these_o proposition_n be_v put_v in_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o the_o apol._n fol._n 16._o and_o in_o the_o margin_n there_o be_v this_o note_n dangerous_a and_o offensive_a doctrine_n and_o in_o the_o same_o chap._n fol._n 19_o there_o be_v exception_n take_v at_o this_o proposition_n the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n be_v either_o most_o necessary_a in_o time_n of_o persecution_n or_o altogether_o vain_a and_o as_o a_o superfluous_a ceremony_n in_o god_n church_n and_o in_o the_o margin_n there_o be_v this_o note_n set_v a_o very_a temerarious_a proposition_n and_o he_o prove_v it_o because_o it_o be_v not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n if_o this_o fellow_n have_v ever_o be_v a_o soldier_n he_o will_v have_v conceive_v the_o necessity_n perchance_o of_o armour_n and_o weapon_n in_o war_n although_o no_o man_n will_v say_v that_o armour_n or_o weapon_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o the_o get_n of_o a_o kingdom_n in_o the_o 11._o chapter_n here_o quote_v there_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o certain_a remembrance_n of_o this_o point_n with_o a_o reference_n to_o the_o 2._o chapter_n where_o what_o be_v say_v shall_v be_v discuss_v and_o answer_v with_o less_o danger_n of_o the_o inquisition_n than_o this_o good_a fellow_n be_v in_o and_o whereas_o here_o also_o it_o be_v say_v that_o by_o the_o priest_n their_o own_o letter_n it_o may_v be_v prove_v that_o they_o have_v deal_v express_o with_o the_o queen_n and_o counsel_n against_o the_o father_n of_o the_o society_n and_o such_o as_o stand_v with_o they_o it_o be_v a_o false_a brag_n and_o will_v be_v take_v for_o such_o unless_o some_o other_o letter_n be_v forge_v then_o that_o which_o be_v cite_v in_o the_o 13._o chap._n for_o this_o do_v not_o prove_v any_o such_o matter_n as_o any_o man_n may_v see_v these_o be_v the_o word_n in_o that_o letter_n fol._n 210_o i_o have_v in_o some_o sort_n pacify_v the_o wrath_n of_o our_o prince_n conceive_v against_o we_o and_o of_o her_o counsel_n and_o have_v lay_v the_o fault_n where_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v and_o prove_v that_o the_o secular_a priest_n be_v innocent_a for_o the_o most_o part_n which_o word_n can_v import_v that_o he_o who_o write_v this_o letter_n have_v deal_v against_o any_o but_o only_o that_o he_o have_v deal_v for_o some_o who_o be_v before_o think_v to_o be_v as_o deep_a in_o matter_n displease_v to_o the_o state_n as_o other_o the_o state_n be_v before_o out_o of_o doubt_n that_o there_o be_v such_o plot_n as_o be_v not_o beseem_v subject_n &_o much_o less_o beseem_a man_n of_o our_o call_n and_o so_o much_o the_o more_o odious_a by_o how_o much_o the_o show_n of_o piety_n be_v dangerous_a for_o the_o effect_n of_o any_o stratagem_n and_o the_o counsel_n think_v that_o all_o have_v be_v of_o one_o stamp_n wherein_o the_o inditer_n of_o that_o letter_n affirm_v he_o have_v otherwise_o inform_v they_o and_o free_v the_o innocent_a now_o we_o will_v see_v how_o this_o author_n begin_v to_o close_v up_o his_o holiness_n mouth_n with_o as_o notorious_a a_o falsehood_n as_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n they_o have_v obtain_v say_v he_o that_o four_o of_o their_o seditious_a company_n that_o be_v in_o prison_n before_o have_v liberty_n under_o the_o queen_n letter_n patent_n to_o ride_v up_o and_o down_o all_o england_n for_o a_o time_n to_o gather_v money_n and_o letter_n which_o few_o cath._n will_v dare_v to_o deny_v they_o lest_o they_o detect_v they_o to_o the_o council_n etc._n etc._n this_o also_o be_v a_o meditation_n upon_o the_o same_o letter_n which_o be_v before_o cite_v and_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o 13._o chap._n of_o the_o apol._n fol._n 210._o wherein_o be_v these_o word_n i_o have_v by_o open_v the_o case_n unto_o their_o honour_n and_o to_o caesar_n obtain_v that_o four_o principal_a man_n shall_v be_v banish_v after_o a_o sort_n to_o follow_v the_o appeal_n d._n bagshaw_n bluet_n champney_n &_o barneley_n all_o prisoner_n they_o shall_v be_v here_o with_o i_o on_o wednesday_n next_o a_o month_n they_o shall_v have_v within_o the_o realm_n to_o ride_v abroad_o for_o money_n among_o their_o friend_n and_o then_o choose_v their_o port_n etc._n etc._n and_o from_o hence_o perchance_o this_o fellow_n have_v some_o part_n of_o his_o intelligence_n but_o how_o come_v he_o to_o enlarge_v himself_o so_o far_o as_o to_o say_v that_o these_o priest_n have_v her_o majesty_n letter_n patent_n upon_o what_o record_n have_v he_o find_v this_o or_o do_v he_o mean_v thereby_o to_o draw_v the_o lord_n keeper_n into_o question_n as_o though_o he_o stand_v now_o in_o his_o light_n for_o some_o what_o which_o he_o have_v to_o effect_v all_o letter_n patent_n be_v at_o his_o peril_n upon_o record_n or_o do_v he_o know_v any_o cath._n who_o in_o such_o quandary_n do_v give_v these_o priest_n any_o money_n we_o know_v some_o who_o notwithstanding_o the_o great_a bond_n they_o have_v to_o some_o of_o they_o will_v not_o see_v they_o neither_o will_v the_o priest_n press_v upon_o they_o some_o again_o we_o know_v who_o be_v request_v to_o give_v somewhat_o to_o their_o journey_n to_o rome_n if_o not_o for_o love_v of_o the_o man_n yet_o for_o the_o love_n which_o they_o pretend_v to_o peace_n and_o to_o have_v a_o final_a end_n of_o the_o controversy_n which_o can_v not_o be_v have_v but_o at_o rome_n and_o nothing_o will_v be_v give_v but_o this_o fellow_n care_v not_o what_o he_o say_v to_o the_o pope_n presume_v perchance_o that_o by_o some_o way_n or_o other_o all_o access_n shall_v be_v shut_v and_o his_o falsehood_n shall_v never_o be_v discover_v and_o thus_o forget_v that_o which_o he_o say_v in_o the_o apology_n cap._n 11._o fol._n 162._o that_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o priest_n seem_v not_o to_o be_v to_o inform_v his_o holiness_n but_o to_o make_v a_o noise_n in_o england_n and_o to_o gain_v time_n of_o liberty_n and_o to_o preoccupate_v some_o man_n mind_n by_o make_v a_o show_n that_o they_o appeal_v to_o the_o high_a in_o this_o their_o controversy_n but_o yet_o indeed_o will_v be_v loath_a that_o he_o shall_v know_v it_o and_o much_o loath_a to_o answer_v it_o before_o he_o especial_o this_o pope_n &c_n &c_n here_o he_o tell_v the_o pope_n in_o this_o epistle_n that_o the_o priest_n be_v to_o pass_v into_o france_n and_o there_o by_o the_o help_n of_o the_o queen_n ambassador_n and_o other_o mean_n to_o procure_v if_o they_o can_v his_o most_o christian_a majesty_n letter_n to_o your_o holiness_n in_o their_o favour_n pretend_v that_o they_o can_v get_v the_o queen_n of_o england_n to_o give_v liberty_n of_o conscience_n to_o some_o catholic_a under_o certain_a condition_n whereof_o some_o must_v be_v that_o the_o jesuit_n must_v go_v forth_o of_o england_n all_o this_o be_v in_o handle_v most_o holy_a father_n by_o the_o child_n of_o iniquity_n against_o god_n cause_n and_o his_o servant_n and_o will_v no_o doubt_n bring_v forth_o lamentable_a effect_n if_o your_o holiness_n do_v not_o speedy_o put_v your_o hand_n thereunto_o in_o this_o apology_n we_o do_v lay_v down_o by_o clear_a historical_a narration_n and_o authentical_a testimony_n the_o ground_n of_o all_o christ_n our_o saviour_n inspire_v your_o holiness_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o 10._o chap._n of_o the_o apol._n fol._n 147._o there_o be_v a_o prayer_n make_v to_o god_n by_o the_o archpr._n to_o give_v he_o his_o grace_n so_o to_o use_v fa._n parson_n benefit_n as_o that_o never_o he_o abuse_v they_o and_o that_o never_o he_o fall_v into_o any_o ingrateful_a behaviour_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o the_o margin_n there_o be_v this_o note_n a_o prophecy_n of_o the_o archpriest_n to_o fa._n parson_n how_o much_o more_o worthy_o do_v this_o place_n in_o the_o epistle_n deserve_v to_o be_v note_v for_o a_o prophecy_n but_o perchance_o he_o be_v loath_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o such_o
contempt_n of_o temporal_a good_n his_o conversation_n be_v with_o those_o religious_a that_o have_v no_o possession_n and_o join_v himself_o unto_o the_o beg_a friar_n approve_v their_o poverty_n and_o extol_v their_o perfection_n evident_a token_n that_o he_o have_v leave_v the_o state_n of_o a_o secular_a priest_n and_o ascend_v to_o some_o high_a degree_n of_o perfection_n but_o as_o it_o shall_v seem_v he_o be_v neither_o monk_n nor_o friar_n but_o talis_fw-la qualis_fw-la such_o as_o he_o be_v or_o as_o other_o perchance_o who_o come_v after_o he_o although_o they_o follow_v he_o not_o in_o all_o thing_n for_o as_o it_o appear_v in_o our_o chronicle_n he_o preach_v against_o monk_n and_o other_o religious_a man_n that_o have_v possession_n and_o teach_v such_o doctrine_n as_o he_o be_v condemn_v for_o it_o in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n as_o a_o heretic_n and_o his_o bone_n be_v take_v up_o and_o burn_v as_o be_v beforesaid_a whereby_o also_o this_o author_n be_v prove_v to_o forget_v himself_o very_o much_o to_o number_v he_o among_o the_o clergy_n which_o be_v general_o take_v for_o such_o as_o be_v not_o only_o in_o order_n but_o live_v also_o in_o unity_n of_o the_o faith_n wherefore_o purpose_v to_o tell_v a_o tale_n of_o emulation_n in_o the_o clergy_n against_o the_o religious_a he_o shall_v have_v take_v some_o other_o to_o have_v prove_v it_o than_o wickliff_n who_o also_o by_o his_o pretence_n no_o doubt_n of_o great_a perfection_n have_v forsake_v the_o state_n of_o a_o secular_a clergy_n man_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o habit_n and_o conversation_n to_o these_o falsehood_n and_o covert_a calumny_n against_o the_o secular_a priest_n this_o deceit_n of_o this_o author_n may_v be_v add_v that_o whereas_o the_o chronicle_n do_v mention_v that_o not_o only_a john_n wickliff_n but_o four_o doctor_n of_o divinity_n also_o one_o of_o every_o order_n of_o the_o beg_a friar_n join_v with_o he_o be_v employ_v by_o john_n of_o gaunt_n in_o his_o grudge_n against_o bish_n wickham_n of_o winchester_n in_o who_o defence_n the_o b._n of_o london_n not_o arundel_n as_o this_o author_n affirm_v but_o courtney_n speak_v as_o become_v he_o to_o do_v john_n of_o gaunt_n threaten_v he_o also_o and_o swear_v that_o he_o will_v pull_v down_o both_o the_o pride_n of_o he_o and_o of_o all_o the_o bishop_n in_o england_n this_o author_n mention_v only_o the_o secular_a priest_n as_o he_o term_v he_o without_o any_o mention_n of_o the_o order_n of_o religion_n which_o be_v also_o employ_v moreover_o it_o sound_v very_o foolish_o that_o john_n of_o gaunt_n will_v set_v john_n wickliff_n against_o the_o monk_n upon_o a_o emulation_n which_o he_o have_v against_o the_o bishop_n their_o estate_n depend_v so_o little_a upon_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o monk_n as_o when_o all_o the_o abbey_n in_o england_n be_v put_v down_o the_o bishop_n remain_v in_o as_o great_a honour_n as_o ever_o they_o do_v and_o whereas_o it_o be_v further_o say_v that_o the_o abbey_n land_n be_v take_v from_o the_o monk_n and_o give_v to_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o crown_n by_o the_o same_o emulation_n of_o the_o clergy_n against_o the_o religious_a in_o the_o time_n of_o k._n henry_n the_o eight_o it_o be_v most_o false_a the_o abbey_n be_v then_o put_v down_o by_o a_o change_n of_o religion_n which_o have_v not_o the_o beginning_n upon_o any_o such_o emulation_n as_o this_o author_n affirm_v but_o upon_o the_o persuasion_n of_o longland_n b._n of_o lincoln_n the_o king_n confessor_n fortify_v by_o card._n wolsey_n viz._n that_o his_o highness_n marriage_n with_o the_o lady_n katherine_n his_o brother_n prince_n arthur_n wife_n be_v unlawful_a and_o against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whereby_o the_o king_n be_v induce_v to_o seek_v a_o divorce_n but_o cross_v therein_o with_o the_o pope_n by_o charles_n the_o five_o nephew_n of_o the_o lady_n katherine_n and_o some_o other_o as_o well_o of_o the_o laiety_n as_o the_o clergy_n both_o secular_a and_o religious_a here_o in_o england_n it_o wrought_v in_o the_o king_n such_o a_o dislike_n of_o his_o holiness_n and_o other_o as_o it_o procure_v not_o only_o the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o abbey_n but_o such_o a_o change_n in_o religion_n as_o since_o the_o world_n have_v see_v of_o this_o alteration_n therefore_o if_o any_o emulation_n be_v the_o beginning_n it_o be_v a_o emulation_n in_o the_o cardinal_n who_o deal_v with_o b._n longland_n to_o persuade_v the_o king_n as_o be_v mention_v and_o afterward_o do_v second_v he_o with_o all_o his_o might_n himself_o against_o the_o emperor_n for_o hinder_v he_o of_o the_o popedom_n and_o neither_o the_o sister_n nor_o the_o mother_n to_o ambition_n as_o this_o author_n will_v have_v it_o but_o her_o daughter_n but_o the_o great_a folly_n commit_v by_o this_o author_n in_o this_o his_o exordium_n be_v not_o yet_o touch_v and_o that_o be_v that_o among_o all_o other_o history_n impertinent_a to_o the_o controversy_n in_o question_n he_o will_v make_v his_o choice_n of_o one_o wherein_o himself_o if_o we_o be_v not_o deceive_v be_v notorious_o decipher_v john_n wickliff_n be_v a_o secular_a priest_n be_v a_o priest_n and_o neither_o monk_n nor_o friar_n and_o no_o secular_a priest_n as_o differ_v from_o they_o in_o habit_n and_o converse_v with_o the_o religious_a mendicant_n under_o pretence_n of_o great_a perfection_n his_o follower_n take_v no_o name_n of_o he_o as_o both_o monk_n and_o friar_n do_v of_o their_o founder_n and_o sectary_n of_o their_o master_n but_o go_v under_o the_o name_n which_o the_o common_a people_n give_v they_o to_o wit_n lollard_n he_o be_v use_v as_o a_o instrument_n by_o john_n of_o gant_n to_o bring_v that_o to_o pass_v which_o this_o duke_n have_v long_o conceive_v in_o his_o mind_n for_o he_o see_v say_v the_o history_n sup_v joh._n stow._n sup_v that_o it_o will_v be_v hard_a for_o he_o to_o obtain_v his_o purpose_n the_o church_n stand_v in_o his_o full_a state_n etc._n etc._n wherefore_o he_o labour_v first_o to_o overthrow_v aswell_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n and_o to_o this_o end_n do_v john_n wickliff_n bestow_v his_o talent_n for_o he_o be_v not_o only_o eloquent_a say_v the_o history_n but_o also_o seem_v to_o contemn_v temporal_a good_n for_o the_o love_n of_o eternal_a riches_n etc._n etc._n this_o author_n be_v in_o a_o state_n which_o once_o be_v of_o secular_a priest_n now_o no_o state_n of_o secular_a priest_n not_o because_o he_o will_v be_v take_v for_o either_o monk_n or_o friar_n or_o go_v barefoot_a as_o john_n wickliff_n do_v and_o his_o follower_n or_o base_o clothe_v for_o these_o be_v outward_a mortification_n which_o of_o what_o edification_n soever_o they_o be_v yet_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o that_o honour_n which_o be_v due_a to_o the_o inward_a mortification_n which_o lie_v hide_v and_o be_v not_o see_v by_o the_o corporal_a eye_n but_o because_o pope_n gregory_n the_o 13._o have_v so_o declare_v it_o yet_o so_o as_o he_o being_n filius_fw-la populi_fw-la as_o people_n say_v have_v no_o other_o name_n but_o what_o the_o people_n give_v he_o he_o be_v employ_v not_o by_o john_n of_o gant_n himself_o in_o his_o own_o person_n for_o this_o great_a duke_n die_v above_o 200_o year_n since_o but_o by_o john_n of_o gant_n in_o some_o of_o his_o posterity_n who_o have_v somewhat_o to_o bring_v to_o pass_v which_o he_o have_v long_o conceive_v in_o his_o mind_n for_o the_o effect_n of_o which_o this_o godly_a father_n be_v busy_v in_o the_o corrupt_a the_o clergy_n of_o england_n or_o the_o utter_a overthow_v it_o which_o at_o this_o present_a he_o and_o he_o do_v work_n by_o take_v from_o they_o their_o good_a name_n and_o fame_n and_o make_v they_o odious_a without_o just_a cause_n to_o the_o people_n and_o to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o will_v be_v know_v not_o to_o have_v spend_v his_o time_n idle_o in_o wickliff_n his_o school_n he_o have_v not_o only_o employ_v his_o tongue_n but_o his_o pen_n also_o and_o in_o his_o first_o platform_n of_o reformation_n have_v ordain_v that_o none_o of_o the_o clergy_n shall_v possess_v any_o temporal_a live_n but_o shall_v live_v upon_o such_o pension_n as_o shall_v to_o certain_a of_o his_o company_n and_o some_o secular_a priest_n join_v with_o they_o in_o their_o wisdom_n seem_v necessary_a for_o their_o maintenance_n but_o let_v we_o now_o see_v whether_o this_o author_n can_v fit_v himself_o better_a in_o the_o next_o point_n in_o the_o beginning_n also_o say_v he_o of_o this_o queen_n day_n the_o little_a affection_n which_o the_o laity_n do_v bear_v unto_o the_o clergy_n procure_v by_o some_o unquiet_a spirit_n as_o also_o the_o small_a union_n of_o diverse_a clergy_n man_n among_o themselves_o some_o hold_v with_o the_o heretic_n and_o politike_n by_o beat_v of_o faction_n
lively_o represent_v the_o know_v old_a medicine_n to_o kill_v flea_n by_o put_v dust_n in_o their_o mouth_n if_o but_o half_a of_o these_o matter_n here_o allege_v be_v prove_v against_o the_o priest_n doubtless_o they_o be_v to_o be_v avoid_v by_o catholic_n as_o such_o as_o want_v no_o fault_n in_o themselves_o will_v hardly_o instruct_v other_o in_o virtue_n but_o this_o author_n be_v not_o as_o yet_o settle_v to_o his_o apology_n without_o doubt_n discover_v that_o he_o be_v not_o free_a from_o all_o those_o vice_n which_o he_o have_v reckon_v if_o he_o want_v any_o of_o they_o who_o upon_o so_o small_a or_o rather_o no_o cause_n or_o evidence_n will_v have_v his_o reader_n to_o enter_v into_o so_o rash_a and_o vile_a a_o judgement_n of_o the_o secular_a priest_n as_o though_o his_o apology_n be_v to_o no_o purpose_n unless_o his_o reader_n will_v carry_v such_o a_o uncharitable_a conceit_n of_o they_o as_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o need_n of_o any_o apology_n or_o defence_n of_o those_o who_o be_v their_o adversary_n but_o now_o to_o his_o ground_n of_o this_o present_a contention_n the_o principal_a or_o only_a ground_n say_v he_o of_o this_o our_o present_a contention_n and_o scandalous_a controversy_n be_v the_o very_a same_o disease_n of_o emulation_n partly_o of_o lay_v man_n against_o priest_n and_o partly_o of_o priest_n against_o religious_a man_n especial_o the_o father_n of_o the_o society_n with_o who_o at_o this_o time_n they_o have_v to_o do_v etc._n etc._n we_o have_v before_o show_v that_o the_o emulation_n of_o the_o laity_n against_o the_o clergy_n of_o which_o he_o speak_v before_o be_v for_o that_o the_o clergy_n be_v think_v to_o be_v a_o hindrance_n to_o some_o designment_n of_o the_o laity_n and_o thereupon_o some_o few_o devise_v how_o to_o indomage_v the_o clergy_n the_o emulation_n also_o which_o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o clergy_n against_o the_o religious_a 13●7_n jo●…_n stow_z in_o edw._n 3._o anno_fw-la 13●7_n have_v be_v show_v not_o to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o clergy_n but_o in_o wickliff_n and_o his_o society_n surname_v by_o the_o people_n lollard_n and_o if_o any_o of_o the_o clergy_n may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v join_v with_o wickliff_n in_o that_o his_o insolent_a and_o heretical_a attempt_n they_o be_v of_o the_o religious_a clergy_n and_o not_o of_o the_o secular_a and_o this_o emulation_n be_v against_o the_o religious_a who_o have_v possession_n now_o then_o good_a sir_n if_o the_o principal_a or_o only_a ground_n of_o this_o our_o present_a contention_n and_o scandalous_a controversy_n be_v the_o very_a same_o disease_n of_o emulation_n you_o must_v show_v what_o like_a cause_n the_o lay_v man_n have_v find_v in_o the_o clergy_n or_o the_o priest_n in_o the_o religious_a especial_o the_o father_n of_o the_o society_n who_o by_o their_o rule_n have_v no_o property_n nor_o can_v possess_v any_o thing_n 63._o t.w._n in_o his_o di●res●…on_n from_o the_o 16._o martyr_n pag_n 63._o as_o m_n t.w._n will_v have_v we_o to_o think_v we_o have_v give_v a_o cause_n before_o of_o the_o contrary_a part_n why_o the_o lay_v man_n who_o follow_v the_o jesuit_n and_o the_o jesuit_n also_o may_v be_v think_v to_o stir_v up_o themselves_o against_o some_o secular_a priest_n to_o wit_n because_o that_o some_o of_o the_o secular_a priest_n can_v be_v bring_v to_o like_v of_o such_o plot_n as_o the_o jesuit_n have_v lay_v for_o the_o invasion_n of_o our_o country_n in_o which_o they_o have_v employ_v themselves_o oftentimes_o and_o thrust_v also_o some_o secular_a priest_n into_o the_o action_n although_o most_o grievous_o against_o their_o will_n namely_o in_o the_o year_n 1596._o and_o if_o this_o author_n have_v not_o use_v this_o parenthesis_n speak_v of_o religious_a man_n especial_o the_o father_n of_o the_o society_n with_o who_o at_o this_o present_a they_o have_v to_o do_v we_o shall_v never_o have_v dream_v that_o this_o digression_n from_o hurt_n do_v in_o this_o queen_n day_n have_v be_v make_v against_o the_o priest_n who_o stand_v upon_o their_o defence_n against_o the_o imposture_n of_o the_o jesuit_n and_o their_o adherent_n because_o so_o small_a a_o number_n of_o the_o laity_n do_v stand_v with_o those_o priest_n and_o the_o priest_n themselves_o be_v so_o few_o by_o this_o good_a fellow_n his_o account_n as_o he_o disdain_v much_o that_o they_o be_v call_v the_o priest_n and_o in_o the_o 11._o chap._n of_o the_o apol._n fol._n 162._o he_o allege_v it_o for_o the_o second_o abuse_n sleight_n or_o shift_v which_o be_v use_v towards_o his_o holiness_n in_o the_o title_n of_o the_o book_n dedicate_v unto_o he_o wherein_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o trouble_n be_v between_o the_o jesuit_n on_o the_o one_o side_n with_o the_o archpr._n &c_n &c_n and_o the_o seminary_n priest_n on_o the_o other_o side_n but_o no_o doubt_n herein_o this_o fellow_n his_o memory_n do_v fail_v he_o as_o also_o in_o another_o matter_n there_o mention_v for_o whereas_o here_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o principal_a &_o only_a ground_n of_o this_o our_o present_a contention_n and_o scandalous_a controversy_n be_v the_o very_a same_o disease_n of_o emulation_n partly_o of_o lay_v man_n against_o priest_n and_o partly_o of_o priest_n against_o religious_a man_n especial_o the_o father_n of_o the_o society_n in_o the_o 11._o chap_n fol._n 161._o &_o 162._o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o priest_n their_o controversy_n be_v with_o the_o archpr._n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o their_o stomach_n against_o the_o jesuit_n be_v for_o stand_v with_o he_o and_o for_o he_o so_o as_o by_o this_o reckon_n the_o case_n be_v plain_o alter_v for_o if_o the_o principal_a and_o only_a ground_n of_o this_o our_o present_a contention_n and_o scandalous_a controversy_n be_v the_o very_a same_o disease_n of_o emulation_n partly_o of_o layman_n against_o priest_n and_o partly_o of_o priest_n against_o religious_a man_n especial_o the_o jesuit_n to_o which_o of_o these_o two_o member_n will_v this_o author_n bring_v this_o controversy_n which_o in_o the_o 11._o chap._n he_o say_v be_v between_o priest_n and_o their_o archpriest_n he_o can_v bring_v it_o to_o the_o first_o which_o be_v of_o lay_v man_n against_o priest_n for_o than_o he_o must_v account_v the_o priest_n between_o who_o and_o the_o archpr._n the_o controversy_n be_v or_o the_o archpr._n among_o lay_n man_n which_o i_o trust_v he_o will_v not_o he_o can_v bring_v it_o to_o the_o second_o which_o be_v of_o priest_n against_o religious_a for_o then_o the_o archpr._n between_o who_o and_o the_o priest_n be_v the_o controversy_n must_v be_v confess_v to_o be_v religious_a which_o also_o as_o i_o ween_v he_o will_v not_o say_v especial_o that_o he_o be_v a_o jesuit_n as_o he_o expound_v himself_o or_o a_o father_n of_o the_o society_n with_o who_o at_o this_o present_a as_o he_o say_v here_o they_o the_o priest_n have_v to_o do_v for_o at_o this_o he_o laugh_v num._n 16._o in_o his_o table_n of_o falsehood_n but_o perchance_o his_o strain_n to_o disgorge_v himself_o cause_v a_o lightness_n in_o his_o head_n that_o he_o know_v not_o well_o what_o he_o say_v the_o filth_n then_o before_o show_v be_v now_o out_o of_o his_o stomach_n for_o better_a declaration_n of_o this_o matter_n say_v he_o i_o shall_v go_v forward_o with_o the_o narration_n of_o those_o hurt_n and_o difficulty_n which_o upon_o emulation_n have_v fall_v out_o in_o this_o our_o english_a cause_n under_o the_o queen_n that_o now_o be_v especial_o concern_v the_o seminary_n and_o the_o reduction_n of_o england_n by_o that_o way_n and_o mean_v procure_v for_o these_o 20._o year_n and_o more_o to_o wit_n since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o roman_a english_a college_n which_o be_v in_o the_o year_n 1578._o at_o what_o time_n a_o contention_n begin_v between_o m._n doct._n lewis_n then_o archdeacon_n of_o cambray_n but_o after_o b._n of_o cassana_n and_o the_o english_a scholar_n about_o the_o manner_n of_o government_n and_o governor_n of_o that_o house_n erect_v especial_o by_o his_o procurement_n and_o industry_n he_o have_v show_v you_o before_o what_o hurt_n come_v to_o england_n by_o the_o emulation_n which_o some_o catholic_n have_v against_o the_o restore_n of_o a_o new_a english_a clergy_n at_o douai_n which_o notwithstanding_o the_o seminary_n there_o flourish_v and_o afterward_o also_o at_o rheims_n in_o france_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o england_n thanks_n be_v to_o god_n do_v not_o feel_v that_o hurt_n until_o new_a lord_n come_v who_o be_v of_o the_o jesuit_n faction_n and_o be_v force_v sometime_o to_o run_v with_o they_o for_o some_o respect_n how_o small_a soever_o their_o inward_a devotion_n be_v unto_o they_o now_o he_o will_v give_v you_o to_o understand_v what_o great_a hurt_n our_o english_a cause_n have_v have_v by_o emulation_n which_o be_v at_o rome_n
public_a submission_n and_o in_o express_a word_n acknowledge_v his_o error_n in_o that_o he_o have_v not_o so_o long_a a_o time_n observe_v that_o say_n qui_fw-la nescit_fw-la dissimulare_fw-la nescit_fw-la vivere_fw-la he_o that_o know_v not_o how_o to_o dissemble_v know_v not_o how_o to_o live_v how_o far_o forth_o m.d.b._n note_v in_o the_o margin_n be_v a_o cause_n of_o that_o visitation_n i_o know_v not_o but_o if_o we_o do_v not_o mistake_v the_o man_n he_o be_v send_v into_o england_n long_o before_o this_o visitation_n come_v to_o the_o college_n and_o as_o for_o the_o other_o two_o priest_n who_o name_n be_v set_v in_o the_o margin_n in_o this_o sort_n g_o g.e.g._n who_o be_v say_v to_o have_v conspire_v with_o the_o council_n in_o england_n and_o for_o more_o grace_n and_o gratification_n have_v write_v two_o mischievous_a book_n the_o one_o say_v this_o author_n against_o d._n allen_n the_o other_o against_o f._n parson_n and_o the_o jesuite_n give_v they_o up_o to_o walsingham_n the_o queen_n secretary_n affirm_v also_o among_o other_o point_n to_o make_v the_o party_n more_o odious_a as_o our_o man_n their_o successor_n do_v at_o this_o day_n that_o these_o man_n depend_v of_o spaniard_n and_o be_v enemy_n to_o their_o country_n we_o hearty_o wish_v that_o this_o author_n may_v live_v in_o as_o good_a credit_n as_o the_o one_o of_o they_o live_v after_o all_o his_o trouble_n in_o italy_n or_o elsewhere_o and_o die_v as_o penitent_a as_o the_o other_o die_v after_o his_o trouble_n in_o france_n he_o who_o write_v against_o the_o jesuite_n be_v too_o privy_a to_o their_o action_n aswell_o in_o england_n as_o elsewhere_o to_o be_v deceive_v in_o they_o and_o if_o the_o appellant_n be_v the_o man_n who_o here_o this_o author_n mean_v by_o these_o word_n their_o successor_n they_o may_v purge_v themselves_o very_o well_o from_o any_o offence_n in_o have_v the_o like_a thought_n for_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o fa._n parson_n in_o spain_n cause_v many_o aswell_o other_o as_o priest_n to_o subscribe_v as_o priest_n to_o the_o title_n of_o the_o infanta_n now_o duchess_n of_o burgundy_n fa._n tancard_a also_o have_v make_v many_o to_o set_v their_o hand_n to_o three_o blank_n although_o some_o refuse_v to_o do_v it_o as_o they_o have_v themselves_o report_v at_o their_o return_n into_o england_n we_o have_v moreover_o understand_v that_o fa._n parson_n be_v a_o chief_a dealer_n in_o the_o send_n of_o those_o armada_n which_o the_o spaniard_n have_v set_v out_o for_o the_o invasion_n of_o our_o country_n and_o there_o be_v in_o england_n with_o who_o he_o deal_v most_o earnest_o to_o go_v in_o the_o navy_n which_o be_v set_v out_o in_o the_o year_n 1596._o who_o refuse_v to_o be_v employ_v in_o any_o action_n against_o their_o country_n be_v for_o that_o cause_n send_v away_o from_o the_o college_n &_o tell_v that_o it_o be_v not_o convenient_a that_o they_o shall_v stay_v in_o the_o college_n where_o they_o have_v give_v example_n of_o such_o repugnance_n there_o be_v moreover_o sufficient_a proof_n that_o after_o the_o evil_a success_n of_o the_o spanish_a attempt_n fa._n parson_n carry_v a_o youth_n to_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n who_o pronounce_v a_o certain_a speech_n for_o the_o purpose_n which_o be_v end_v fa._n parson_n begin_v to_o urge_v the_o king_n to_o give_v one_o attempt_n more_o affirm_v that_o he_o silly_a fellow_n will_v write_v his_o letter_n into_o england_n and_o nothing_o doubt_v to_o effect_v what_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o great_a furtherance_n of_o such_o a_o journey_n we_o have_v also_o certain_a intelligence_n that_o the_o jesuite_n have_v devise_v a_o mean_n to_o have_v have_v the_o tower_n of_o london_n seize_v into_o their_o hand_n and_o how_o they_o will_v have_v it_o hold_v until_o the_o spaniard_n come_v to_o rescue_v they_o diverse_a of_o their_o letter_n have_v be_v show_v to_o diverse_a prisoner_n for_o proof_n against_o they_o when_o they_o have_v answer_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o jesuite_n that_o they_o think_v they_o free_a from_o such_o stratagem_n and_o among_o the_o rest_n there_o be_v one_o of_o the_o 10._o of_o june_n 1596._o wherein_o there_o be_v these_o word_n it_o may_v be_v if_o the_o king_n faintness_n and_o pusillanimity_n hinder_v we_o not_o as_o heretofore_o it_o have_v the_o armado_n will_v be_v with_o you_o about_o august_n or_o september_n this_o be_v one_o good_a help_n ireland_n will_v be_v only_a for_o us._n the_o earl_n of_o tyrone_n and_o odonell_n will_v glad_o have_v help_n from_o hence_o and_o they_o be_v well_o content_v to_o let_v the_o spaniard_n have_v certain_a hold_n and_o fort_n for_o their_o use_n this_o will_v great_o pleasure_v to_o trouble_v and_o disquiet_v england_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n serve_v for_o harbour_v for_o the_o ship_n that_o shall_v pass_v that_o way_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v necessary_a you_o shall_v make_v it_o know_v aforehand_o that_o no_o cath._n man_n or_o woman_n shall_v take_v harm_n either_o in_o body_n or_o good_n let_v every_o man_n be_v quiet_a till_o the_o spaniard_n be_v land_v then_o shall_v there_o present_o proclamation_n be_v make_v of_o all_o security_n spain_n there_o be_v 200._o copy_n of_o these_o proclamation_n print_v in_o spain_n certain_a other_o letter_n also_o have_v be_v see_v of_o fa._n parson_n to_o his_o fellow_n jesuit_n in_o england_n wherein_o he_o have_v wish_v that_o the_o catho_n will_v unite_v themselves_o together_o &_o set_v up_o a_o king_n of_o england_n and_o in_o his_o letter_n of_o the_o 24._o of_o janu._n 1600._o to_o the_o earl_n of_o anguise_n he_o confess_v that_o he_o deal_v in_o such_o matter_n for_o 8._o or_o 10._o year_n but_o if_o all_o these_o and_o many_o other_o as_o infallible_a proof_n do_v fail_v we_o f._n parson_n book_n of_o succession_n will_v so_o far_o convince_v his_o deal_n in_o state_n matter_n in_o the_o behalf_n of_o spain_n as_o the_o appellantes_fw-la may_n without_o scruple_n charge_v he_o with_o it_o yet_o without_o any_o intention_n to_o make_v he_o more_o odious_a know_v it_o a_o thing_n very_o impossible_a if_o they_o be_v so_o mind_v and_o thus_o much_o concern_v this_o author_n his_o folly_n in_o endeavour_v to_o gall_v the_o appellantes_fw-la with_o the_o name_n of_o successor_n to_o such_o as_o affirm_v that_o the_o jesuite_n depend_v of_o the_o spaniard_n and_o be_v enemy_n to_o their_o country_n the_o next_o fit_n of_o emulation_n here_o mention_v be_v against_o d._n allen_n when_o he_o be_v to_o be_v make_v a_o cardinal_n and_o it_o be_v set_v out_o with_o a_o very_a rich_a margin_n and_o much_o to_o our_o present_a matter_n in_o controversy_n i_o warrant_v you_o but_o not_o be_v able_a to_o prevail_v in_o this_o against_o the_o card_n himself_o say_v this_o author_n they_o begin_v to_o set_v more_o earnest_o against_o the_o jesuit_n his_o chief_a friend_n and_o constant_a defender_n as_o well_o in_o stir_v up_o the_o scholar_n in_o rome_n against_o the_o father_n that_o govern_v they_o as_o also_o to_o make_v a_o faction_n against_o they_o by_o secular_a priest_n in_o england_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o a_o letter_n of_o the_o cardinal_n own_o write_v most_o earnest_o not_o six_o month_n before_o his_o death_n to_o a_o priest_n name_v much_o etc._n etc._n there_o be_v a_o special_a treatise_n come_v forth_o of_o the_o trouble_n of_o that_o roman_a english_a college_n to_o which_o i_o be_o to_o refer_v the_o reader_n and_o to_o note_v no_o other_o thing_n in_o this_o place_n then_o that_o the_o misdemeanour_n of_o the_o jesuit_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o those_o trouble_n but_o concern_v this_o foolish_a assertion_n that_o there_o be_v a_o faction_n against_o the_o jesuit_n by_o secular_a priest_n in_o england_n the_o contrary_a be_v most_o clear_a as_o all_o england_n may_v witness_v and_o there_o be_v a_o letter_n extant_a of_o m._n george_n blackwell_n the_o now_o archpriest_n wherein_o he_o inveigh_v mighty_o against_o those_o who_o have_v make_v the_o report_n that_o the_o priest_n and_o jesuite_n be_v at_o strife_n caietane_n january_n 1596._o to_o th●_n c._n caietane_n and_o this_o letter_n be_v keep_v in_o the_o english_a college_n at_o rome_n &_o register_v as_o a_o oracle_n although_o perchance_o not_o for_o this_o clause_n so_o much_o as_o for_o the_o immoderate_a but_o false_a extol_n of_o the_o jesuit_n in_o do_v infinite_a deed_n of_o charity_n out_o of_o the_o profit_n of_o their_o patrimony_n nam_fw-la minima_fw-la sunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n say_v m._n black_n it_o be_v not_o worth_a the_o speak_n of_o which_o they_o receive_v of_o alm_n etc._n etc._n and_o whereas_o the_o card._n allen_n his_o letter_n be_v here_o bring_v to_o testify_v a_o faction_n of_o either_o the_o scholar_n at_o rome_n or_o the_o secular_a priest_n in_o england_n against_o the_o
jesuit_n it_o be_v a_o mere_a mockery_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o letter_n itself_o for_o so_o much_o as_o be_v set_v down_o to_o this_o purpose_n in_o this_o apology_n cap._n 2._o fol._n 11._o where_o we_o find_v these_o word_n i_o have_v hear_v to_o my_o great_a grief_n that_o there_o be_v not_o that_o good_a correspondence_n between_o the_o father_n and_o other_o priest_n i_o can_v tell_v upon_o what_o discontentment_n etc._n etc._n but_o whereof_o soever_o it_o come_v it_o be_v of_o the_o enemy_n and_o with_o all_o possible_a discretion_n and_o diligence_n by_o the_o wise_a sort_n on_o both_o side_n to_o be_v root_v out_o or_o else_o it_o will_v be_v the_o ruin_n of_o the_o whole_a cause_n etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o in_o this_o point_n especial_o m._n much_o be_v earnest_a and_o peremptory_a with_o all_o party_n and_o every_o one_o in_o particular_a etc._n etc._n by_o which_o we_o understand_v not_o how_o it_o may_v rather_o be_v gather_v that_o there_o be_v a_o faction_n by_o the_o secular_a priest_n against_o the_o jesuit_n then_o that_o there_o be_v a_o faction_n by_o the_o jesuit_n against_o the_o secular_a priest_n neither_o be_v here_o any_o relation_n to_o any_o former_a speech_n have_v with_o he_o as_o doubtless_o there_o will_v have_v be_v have_v m._n much_o give_v any_o such_o information_n to_o he_o but_o rather_o the_o contrary_a as_o may_v be_v gather_v by_o these_o word_n i_o have_v hear_v to_o my_o great_a grief_n etc._n etc._n which_o argue_v that_o this_o be_v put_v into_o his_o head_n by_o some_o other_o that_o this_o be_v before_o lay_v for_o a_o ground_n they_o may_v afterward_o build_v thereon_o to_o their_o own_o best_a like_n nothing_o at_o any_o time_n be_v account_v so_o much_o their_o honour_n and_o glory_n as_o other_o fall_v out_o which_o howsoever_o they_o do_v underhand_o nourish_v it_o while_o they_o will_v seem_v to_o remedy_v it_o make_v they_o wise_a and_o charitable_a purueyour_n for_o the_o common_a cause_n and_o what_o not_o good_a man_n be_v as_o innocent_a of_o these_o broil_n and_o division_n as_o sinon_n be_v of_o the_o betray_n of_o troy_n moreover_o it_o may_v appear_v by_o this_o letter_n that_o the_o car._n have_v a_o very_a great_a good_a conceit_n of_o m._n much_o who_o will_v employ_v he_o in_o a_o matter_n in_o which_o lie_v the_o ruin_n of_o the_o whole_a cause_n and_o therefore_o will_v he_o to_o be_v earnest_n yea_o and_o peremptory_a with_o all_o party_n his_o good_a affection_n be_v also_o show_v in_o that_o at_o his_o come_n into_o england_n he_o persuade_v the_o pope_n to_o give_v unto_o he_o very_o special_a faculty_n and_o power_n to_o name_n at_o his_o return_n into_o england_n to_o a_o certain_a number_n who_o hoc_fw-la ipso_fw-la shall_v have_v the_o like_a and_o yet_o this_o author_n be_v not_o ashamed_a in_o this_o place_n to_o set_v down_o to_o his_o discredit_n these_o word_n have_v be_v with_o the_o cardinal_n at_o rome_n and_o have_v do_v some_o evil_a office_n as_o be_v presume_v etc._n etc._n the_o card._n perceive_v his_o humour_n write_v most_o effectual_o to_o he_o and_o by_o he_o to_o other_o against_o this_o division_n and_o faction_n but_o little_o prevail_v and_o in_o the_o margin_n there_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o above_o cite_v letter_n which_o as_o they_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o apology_n be_v a_o most_o absurd_a instance_n to_o prove_v thus_o much_o as_o be_v here_o presume_v of_o the_o cardinal_n sinister_a conceit_n of_o m._n much_o as_o that_o it_o be_v far_o from_o truth_n which_o be_v avow_a that_o the_o cardinal_n be_v disunite_v from_o the_o father_n before_o he_o die_v for_o thus_o this_o author_n make_v his_o tale_n hang_v together_o but_o it_o little_o prevail_v as_o now_o appear_v only_o it_o may_v serve_v to_o prove_v how_o false_a and_o far_o from_o truth_n it_o be_v which_o he_o m._n much_o and_o other_o of_o his_o faction_n do_v avow_v in_o their_o book_n that_o the_o cardinal_n be_v disunite_v from_o the_o father_n before_o he_o die_v for_o that_o he_o say_v as_o they_o relate_v that_o when_o he_o shall_v be_v dead_a far_o great_a trouble_n and_o opposition_n will_v fall_v out_o against_o the_o jesuit_n which_o may_v be_v true_a for_o that_o he_o see_v so_o much_o emulation_n against_o they_o by_o libertine_n and_o factious_a people_n already_o begin_v in_o his_o time_n which_o yet_o be_v retain_v somewhat_o from_o break_v forth_o by_o this_o authority_n while_o he_o live_v but_o the_o cardinal_n live_v yet_o six_o month_n long_o what_o proof_n can_v this_o letter_n be_v that_o he_o be_v not_o disunite_v from_o the_o jesuit_n before_o he_o die_v or_o what_o proof_n be_v it_o of_o any_o such_o union_n to_o the_o jesuit_n when_o he_o write_v it_o as_o it_o can_v not_o be_v likely_a that_o he_o be_v disunite_v before_o he_o die_v he_o will_v master_n much_o to_o be_v earnest_a and_o peremptory_a with_o all_o party_n in_o which_o word_n the_o jesuite_n be_v include_v aswell_o as_o the_o secular_a priest_n and_o consequent_o the_o cardinal_n be_v peremptory_o conceit_v that_o somewhat_o be_v amiss_o in_o the_o jesuit_n or_o else_o he_o will_v not_o have_v be_v so_o bold_a with_o they_o as_o he_o may_v upon_o any_o small_a occasion_n with_o the_o secular_a of_o who_o he_o have_v a_o particular_a charge_n to_o our_o remembrance_n also_o the_o word_n of_o the_o cardinal_n relate_v unto_o we_o be_v not_o those_o which_o be_v here_o cite_v to_o wit_n that_o when_o he_o be_v dead_a far_o great_a trouble_n and_o opposition_n will_v fall_v out_o against_o the_o jesuit_n but_o that_o there_o will_v be_v very_o great_a trouble_n by_o the_o jesuit_n their_o ambitious_a course_n &_o bad_a carriage_n towards_o the_o secular_a priest_n and_o this_o gloze_n that_o he_o foresee_v so_o much_o emulation_n against_o they_o by_o libertine_n and_o factious_a people_n be_v pious_o make_v by_o this_o author_n that_o the_o reader_n shall_v be_v out_o of_o doubt_n what_o spirit_n it_o be_v which_o do_v assist_v he_o in_o the_o make_n of_o this_o his_o necessary_a apology_n but_o the_o good_a cardinal_n be_v dead_a in_o the_o year_n 1594_o all_o faction_n say_v this_o fellow_n break_v out_o together_o against_o the_o jesuit_n destitute_a now_o of_o the_o cardinal_n assistance_n etc._n etc._n this_o author_n mistake_v the_o matter_n for_o after_o the_o cardinal_n death_n the_o jesuit_n begin_v their_o reign_n in_o every_o place_n where_o any_o english_a be_v resident_a as_o at_o rome_n and_o in_o england_n especial_o at_o wisbich_n where_o through_o the_o folly_n of_o the_o lay_v catholic_n they_o have_v great_a hope_n to_o prevail_v first_o and_o afterward_o to_o have_v a_o easy_a conquest_n of_o the_o rest_n the_o stir_n &_o trouble_v of_o rome_n be_v particular_o to_o be_v set_v down_o in_o a_o discourse_n thereof_o whither_o we_o be_v to_o refer_v the_o reader_n the_o stir_n in_o england_n begin_v at_o wisbich_n by_o the_o insolency_n of_o the_o jesuit_n there_o in_o durance_n f._n weston_n f._n buckley_n f._n bolton_n and_o other_o who_o have_v devote_a themselves_n particular_o to_o their_o order_n or_o pass_v their_o vow_n in_o secret_a and_o to_o effect_v this_o the_o better_a the_o lay_v gentleman_n by_o who_o charity_n the_o castle_n have_v be_v relieve_v be_v deal_v withal_o by_o the_o jesuit_n or_o their_o factious_a adherent_n to_o withdraw_v their_o charity_n from_o all_o those_o who_o will_v not_o subject_v themselves_o too_o f._n weston_n the_o jesuit_n by_o who_o instruction_n it_o be_v most_o false_o here_o avow_a that_o the_o company_n have_v live_v a_o collegiall_a and_o religious_a manner_n of_o life_n for_o before_o he_o come_v thither_o they_o live_v indeed_o in_o such_o sort_n but_o after_o his_o come_n his_o ambitious_a humour_n disturb_v the_o whole_a house_n as_o it_o be_v set_v down_o in_o a_o book_n already_o publish_v of_o the_o stir_n at_o wisbich_n and_o as_o for_o the_o stir_n which_o be_v in_o the_o low-countries_n the_o cause_n be_v here_o in_o patt_n set_v down_o by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o apology_n to_o wit_n that_o fa._n holt_n and_o m._n hugh_n owen_n be_v deem_v partial_a against_o some_o and_o do_v not_o further_o they_o for_o the_o get_n of_o their_o pension_n but_o as_o it_o shall_v seem_v these_o two_o have_v some_o intent_n in_o which_o because_o those_o other_o will_v not_o join_v with_o they_o they_o be_v account_v as_o factious_a and_o not_o worthy_a of_o the_o spanish_a charity_n f._n holt_n be_v sufficient_o know_v to_o have_v be_v a_o notorious_a actor_n in_o the_o year_n 1588._o and_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n think_v through_o his_o folly_n to_o have_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o death_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o parma_n his_o treachery_n be_v afterward_o better_o
instruction_n and_o false_o insert_v among_o those_o which_o be_v send_v unto_o the_o archp._n from_o rome_n this_o instruction_n make_v that_o every_o one_o shall_v set_v his_o hand_n against_o that_o memorial_n and_o this_o do_v the_o new_a archpriest_n even_o when_o he_o be_v take_v in_o the_o manner_n of_o falsify_v his_o instruction_n so_o urge_v upon_o m._n collington_n &_o m._n charnocke_v when_o he_o send_v for_o they_o to_o make_v know_v his_o authority_n as_o he_o threaten_v they_o grievous_o if_o they_o will_v not_o subscribe_v against_o it_o affirm_v that_o they_o shall_v answer_v this_o their_o bear_n off_o from_o that_o action_n in_o some_o public_a court_n where_o they_o shall_v repent_v it_o afterward_o also_o it_o be_v so_o follow_v as_o m._n henry_n henslow_n be_v employ_v to_o persuade_v they_o where_o m._n collington_n be_v then_o resident_a to_o turn_v he_o out_o of_o their_o house_n and_o he_o perform_v his_o office_n with_o such_o immodest_a term_n and_o with_o such_o extreme_a fury_n as_o he_o well_o discover_v whereunto_o this_o new_a authority_n do_v tend_v and_o thus_o much_o to_o show_v that_o it_o be_v far_o enough_o both_o from_o slander_n and_o falsehood_n which_o be_v say_v of_o the_o jesuite_n their_o endeavour_n to_o govern_v the_o secular_a priest_n against_o their_o will_n and_o how_o they_o do_v canvas_v for_o name_n against_o the_o memorial_n and_o press_v the_o priest_n so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v constrain_v to_o use_v figure_n as_o some_o of_o they_o have_v since_o confess_v to_o satisfy_v the_o importunity_n of_o the_o jesuite_n and_o their_o factour_n this_o also_o be_v here_o to_o be_v remember_v that_o the_o man_n name_v to_o have_v be_v send_v over_o by_o the_o priest_n into_o flanders_n to_o accuse_v the_o jesuite_n be_v not_o send_v by_o they_o but_o return_v thither_o from_o whence_o he_o be_v send_v into_o england_n to_o understand_v whether_o the_o jesuit_n do_v use_v themselves_o no_o better_o in_o england_n among_o the_o priest_n than_o they_o do_v at_o rome_n among_o the_o english_a student_n for_o to_o this_o end_n he_o be_v employ_v by_o the_o card._n toledo_n as_o he_o affirm_v and_o have_v letter_n to_o that_o effect_n of_o the_o cardinal_n who_o be_v much_o aversed_a from_o the_o jesuit_n their_o action_n in_o the_o college_n and_o although_o he_o bring_v not_o these_o letter_n with_o he_o into_o england_n which_o be_v a_o cause_n that_o many_o give_v no_o credit_n unto_o he_o yet_o he_o bring_v some_o testimony_n thereof_o and_o that_o he_o be_v employ_v into_o england_n by_o the_o cardinal_n and_o can_v not_o return_v any_o other_o answer_n than_o what_o be_v most_o apparent_a by_o the_o division_n at_o wisbich_n that_o the_o jesuite_n as_o ambitious_a man_n will_v govern_v the_o priest_n against_o their_o will_n when_o his_o holiness_n see_v this_o manner_n of_o proceed_v say_v this_o author_n that_o be_v to_o say_v how_o he_o shall_v be_v enforce_v to_o confirm_v these_o prelate_n which_o the_o secular_a priest_n will_v have_v choose_v and_o how_o the_o jesuite_n be_v slander_v and_o purge_v by_o the_o most_o of_o the_o priest_n in_o england_n he_o will_v the_o card_n protector_n to_o call_v unto_o he_o f._n parson_n and_o other_o englishman_n in_o rome_n to_o see_v what_o remedy_n be_v best_a for_o these_o disorder_n they_o answer_v that_o the_o only_a way_n which_o seem_v good_a to_o they_o be_v to_o give_v they_o a_o superior_a or_o prelate_n of_o their_o own_o order_n and_o to_o deliver_v thereby_o the_o jesuite_n from_o these_o calumniation_n which_o his_o holiness_n yield_v unto_o after_o diverse_a month_n consultation_n etc._n etc._n here_o than_o we_o be_v solicit_v to_o conceive_v that_o the_o ground_n of_o this_o new_a authority_n be_v his_o holiness_n care_n to_o remedy_v the_o disorder_n which_o he_o perceive_v to_o be_v in_o england_n by_o such_o letter_n as_o be_v write_v unto_o he_o namely_o against_o this_o memorial_n and_o that_o after_o diverse_a month_n consultation_n it_o be_v appoint_v but_o we_o have_v already_o show_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v this_o a_o notorious_a falsehood_n for_o as_o we_o have_v prove_v out_o of_o this_o apo._n foe_n 98_o the_o first_o letter_n which_o be_v write_v to_o this_o effect_n be_v write_v the_o 24_o of_o march_n 1598._o which_o be_v after_o the_o cardinal_n letter_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o archpriest_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o date_n thereof_o which_o be_v the_o seven_o of_o march_n 1598._o as_o it_o be_v to_o be_v see_v fol._n 102._o and_o consequent_o diverse_a month_n after_o that_o his_o hol._n be_v say_v to_o have_v enter_v into_o this_o consultation_n as_o appear_v in_o this_o present_a place_n of_o the_o 1._o chap._n and_o in_o the_o 8._o chap._n fol._n 98._o but_o perchance_o we_o take_v this_o author_n at_o the_o worst_a when_o we_o construe_v his_o word_n in_o this_o manner_n as_o though_o he_o have_v say_v that_o his_o hol._n have_v upon_o these_o letter_n advise_v upon_o some_o subordination_n &_o after_o diverse_a month_n resolve_v upon_o this_o whereas_o this_o author_n after_o mention_v of_o these_o letter_n and_o other_o matter_n say_v only_o in_o this_o sort_n when_o his_o holiness_n see_v this_o manner_n of_o proceed_v he_o will_v the_o cardinal_n etc._n etc._n we_o be_v therefore_o to_o request_v the_o indifferent_a reader_n to_o turn_v to_o the_o 8._o cha_n of_o the_o apol._n where_o no_o such_o shift_n can_v be_v use_v to_o avoid_v this_o foul_a deal_n the_o cha_n begin_v in_o this_o manner_n when_o his_o hol._n hear_v the_o former_a state_n of_o matter_n in_o england_n flanders_n and_o other_o place_n and_o of_o the_o murmuration_n of_o some_o against_o the_o father_n of_o the_o society_n set_v down_o aswell_o in_o the_o abovesaid_a contumelious_a memorial_n as_o by_o diverse_a other_o letter_n &_o relation_n which_o come_v to_o the_o protector_n sight_n and_o by_o he_o be_v relate_v to_o his_o holiness_n and_o namely_o when_o he_o receive_v great_a store_n of_o private_a and_o public_a letter_n out_o of_o england_n against_o the_o say_a memorial_n of_o fisher_n and_o some_o one_o with_o above_o 100_o hand_n at_o it_o other_o with_o 40._o and_o 50._o all_o in_o favour_n and_o commendation_n of_o the_o father_n etc._n etc._n his_o holiness_n after_o mature_a deliberation_n resolve_v etc._n etc._n and_o because_o he_o will_v not_o come_v without_o his_o proof_n what_o cause_n his_o holiness_n have_v to_o institute_v this_o subordination_n or_o rather_o to_o give_v order_n to_o the_o cardinal_n for_o it_o as_o he_o say_v he_o have_v set_v down_o in_o the_o margin_n a_o note_n of_o the_o letter_n which_o cause_v this_o consultation_n see_v say_v he_o in_o the_o margin_n the_o letter_n of_o the_o northern_a priest_n 24._o mart._n 1598._o and_o other_o 20._o apr._n and_o other_o after_o 30._o jul_n and_o other_o of_o the_o south_n in_o great_a number_n 18._o maij_fw-la and_o of_o the_o quiet_a sort_n of_o wisbich_n 27._o march_n 1598._o and_o who_o without_o blush_v can_v read_v this_o and_o take_v it_o as_o a_o cause_n of_o a_o determination_n upon_o the_o 7._o of_o march_n 1598._o for_o then_o be_v the_o authority_n institute_v as_o be_v acknowledge_v fol._n 102._o &_o much_o less_o of_o a_o consultation_n diverse_a month_n before_o as_o be_v here_o say_v fol._n 7._o and_o thus_o he_o go_v forward_o with_o a_o certain_a shameless_a boldness_n not_o care_v what_o he_o say_v know_v belike_o that_o his_o favourite_n will_v swallow_v any_o thing_n easy_o which_o he_o propose_v unto_o they_o yet_o do_v he_o too_o much_o forget_v himself_o in_o this_o place_n where_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o think_v expedient_a for_o his_o holiness_n to_o write_v himself_o for_o avoid_v suspicion_n and_o trouble_n of_o the_o state_n of_o england_n for_o by_o this_o he_o will_v sufficient_o purge_v those_o priest_n of_o all_o disobedience_n to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a who_o do_v not_o subject_v themselves_o to_o the_o new_a authority_n upon_o the_o come_n of_o the_o cardinal_n letter_n by_o which_o the_o authority_n be_v institute_v but_o this_o be_v elsewhere_o sufficient_o handle_v and_o prove_v to_o be_v free_a not_o only_o from_o schism_n or_o disobedience_n but_o from_o all_o sin_n also_o yea_o though_o it_o be_v true_a that_o his_o holiness_n give_v full_a commission_n as_o here_o it_o be_v say_v to_o the_o card._n caietane_n the_o protector_n to_o appoint_v the_o authority_n with_o convenient_a instruction_n for_o his_o holiness_n not_o write_v himself_o as_o here_o it_o be_v confess_v how_o shall_v the_o priest_n take_v notice_n thereof_o that_o it_o be_v his_o act_n which_o together_o with_o the_o archpriest_n misdemeanour_n in_o the_o promulgation_n of_o his_o new_a authority_n &_o other_o matter_n also_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o priest_n do_v at_o their_o
apud_fw-la secretarios_fw-la domesticos_fw-la &_o corum_fw-la scriptores_fw-la fere_n semper_fw-la &_o expeditae_fw-la expectantibus_fw-la accepta_fw-la earum_fw-la taxa_fw-la pro_fw-la rei_fw-la natura_fw-la &_o scripturae_fw-la mercede_fw-la restituuntur_fw-la there_o be_v a_o cardinal_n skilful_a in_o the_o law_n say_v zecchius_fw-la who_o be_v appoint_v over_o the_o office_n of_o the_o breve_n who_o have_v leave_n immediate_o from_o the_o pope_n own_o mouth_n or_o by_o the_o relation_n of_o some_o other_o without_o any_o other_o warrant_v from_o he_o and_o without_o the_o supplication_n but_o only_o have_v a_o small_a abbreviation_n of_o the_o breve_n view_v the_o form_n of_o the_o breve_fw-la add_v or_o diminish_v thereof_o as_o it_o shall_v please_v he_o and_o when_o he_o have_v view_v his_o small_a abbreviation_n of_o the_o breve_fw-la and_o set_v his_o hand_n unto_o it_o be_v deliver_v it_o back_o to_o those_o who_o present_v it_o unto_o he_o and_o so_o it_o be_v carry_v as_o warrant_v to_o those_o to_o who_o it_o belong_v to_o make_v the_o breve_n hereupon_o be_v letter_n frame_v in_o form_n of_o a_o breve_fw-la and_o write_v in_o thin_a parchment_n and_o be_v write_v they_o be_v seal_v with_o wax_n under_o the_o pope_n scale_n call_v annulus_fw-la piscatoris_fw-la by_o the_o domestical_a secretary_n and_o their_o writer_n almost_o always_o and_o be_v dispatch_v they_o be_v give_v back_o to_o those_o who_o wait_v for_o they_o pay_v the_o duty_n according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o the_o hire_n or_o reward_v for_o the_o writing_n let_v we_o now_o lay_v these_o matter_n together_o first_o how_o that_o breve_n be_v make_v and_o his_o hol._n never_n read_v they_o nor_o yet_o the_o cardinal_n who_o be_v precedent_n or_o chief_a in_o the_o office_n after_o that_o he_o have_v give_v his_o warrant_n for_o the_o draw_v of_o the_o breve_fw-la according_a to_o that_o which_o be_v show_v to_o he_o by_o the_o abbreviator_n nor_o know_v aught_o of_o the_o matter_n but_o what_o the_o procurer_n thereof_o sugge_v second_o f._n parson_n industry_n to_o further_a the_o plot_n which_o he_o have_v lay_v three_o the_o credit_n which_o he_o have_v in_o rome_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o spanish_a faction_n which_o he_o have_v many_o year_n blind_v in_o such_o sort_n with_o put_v so_o great_a a_o island_n as_o england_n or_o ireland_n or_o both_o in_o their_o eye_n as_o they_o can_v see_v how_o vain_o they_o be_v themselves_o upon_o the_o foolish_a promise_n of_o so_o mean_v a_o man_n four_o the_o fault_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v very_o great_a in_o the_o breve_fw-la where_o it_o refer_v we_o for_o proof_n of_o a_o matter_n to_o a_o letter_n which_o do_v not_o contain_v that_o which_o the_o breve_fw-la say_v it_o do_v five_o that_o it_o may_v come_v from_o diverse_a office_n and_o no_o man_n can_v with_o reason_n blame_v the_o priest_n if_o they_o have_v some_o doubt_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o procure_v this_o breve_fw-la and_o also_o affirm_v thus_o much_o god_n know_v out_o of_o what_o office_n it_o be_v procure_v not_o accuse_v it_o notwithstanding_o of_o forgery_n as_o this_o author_n most_o injurious_o and_o false_o tax_v they_o concern_v the_o other_o accusation_n that_o the_o priest_n do_v seek_v to_o draw_v his_o holiness_n pious_a meaning_n into_o matter_n of_o state_n i_o answer_v that_o his_o holiness_n pious_a meaning_n be_v not_o know_v or_o that_o he_o have_v any_o part_n in_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o authority_n until_o his_o breve_fw-la come_v and_o if_o since_o this_o time_n by_o the_o jesuite_n mean_n or_o any_o other_o his_o holiness_n have_v by_o any_o act_n in_o ireland_n or_o otherwise_o give_v the_o council_n cause_n to_o think_v that_o he_o deal_v in_o state_n matter_n the_o priest_n in_o england_n be_v not_o to_o be_v charge_v with_o that_o which_o may_v thereupon_o fall_v out_o and_o it_o be_v say_v that_o it_o have_v be_v confess_v by_o some_o who_o be_v in_o hold_n now_o in_o england_n that_o such_o a_o conceit_n be_v currant_n in_o spain_n that_o this_o archipresbyterie_n be_v make_v for_o the_o furtherance_n of_o some_o state_n plot_n against_o our_o country_n which_o at_o that_o time_n perchance_o be_v conceal_v from_o his_o holiness_n and_o a_o fair_a tale_n tell_v he_o of_o piety_n to_o win_v he_o to_o institute_v it_o at_o their_o instance_n who_o hope_v to_o get_v thereby_o what_o they_o desire_v will_v in_o time_n bring_v the_o church_n government_n into_o a_o company_n of_o blind-devout-obedient_a child_n under_o some_o elder_n or_o some_o agent_n which_o have_v be_v to_o take_v away_o all_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n and_o ancient_a approve_a government_n in_o our_o church_n but_o as_o it_o have_v be_v often_o say_v and_o be_v confess_v in_o this_o apology_n the_o breve_fw-la come_v not_o in_o a_o year_n after_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o authority_n and_o therefore_o these_o be_v very_o malicious_a accusation_n and_o construction_n of_o the_o priest_n their_o word_n which_o be_v write_v or_o speak_v when_o they_o know_v no_o other_o then_o that_o all_o proceed_v from_o the_o cardinal_n cajetan_v at_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o jesuite_n who_o troublesome_a and_o seditious_a state-humor_n be_v too_o well_o know_v in_o england_n and_o give_v too_o much_o cause_n to_o say_v more_o than_o ever_o the_o priest_n as_o yet_o have_v say_v in_o this_o kind_n but_o now_o to_o make_v a_o end_n of_o this_o second_o chapter_n this_o author_n cit_v a_o other_o proposition_n out_o of_o the_o english_a book_n that_o be_v that_o confirmation_n be_v either_o most_o necessary_a in_o time_n of_o persecution_n or_o altogether_o vain_a and_o as_o a_o superfluous_a ceremony_n in_o god_n church_n upon_o which_o assertion_n thus_o he_o run_v which_o be_v a_o very_a temerarious_a and_o scandalous_a speech_n not_o to_o censure_v it_o any_o further_a but_o to_o leave_v it_o to_o who_o it_o belong_v but_o yet_o he_o will_v have_v a_o blow_n or_o two_o at_o the_o leg_n of_o it_o at_o the_o least_o let_v we_o see_v his_o play_n for_o that_o the_o word_n vain_a and_o superfluous_a ceremony_n be_v contemptuous_a phrase_n of_o the_o heretic_n in_o good_a time_n good_a sir_n and_o you_o by_o this_o have_v give_v we_o some_o light_n how_o it_o can_v be_v possible_a that_o you_o shall_v go_v so_o far_o out_o of_o the_o way_n as_o you_o do_v not_o only_o here_o but_o every_o where_n in_o this_o apology_n you_o have_v read_v as_o we_o take_v it_o that_o say_v of_o elias_n siautem_fw-la baal_n sequimini_fw-la illum_fw-la if_o baal_n be_v god_n follow_v he_o those_o latter_a word_n do_v best_o serve_v your_o turn_n the_o whole_a proposition_n be_v too_o heavy_a for_o you_o can_v you_o find_v in_o any_o of_o the_o priest_n book_n where_o they_o say_v that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n be_v a_o vain_a and_o superfluous_a ceremony_n if_o you_o can_v then_o cite_v the_o place_n and_o you_o shall_v have_v humble_a thanks_n for_o your_o pain_n and_o shall_v thereby_o also_o put_v the_o priest_n in_o mind_n of_o such_o their_o temerarious_a and_o scandalous_a proposition_n if_o you_o can_v as_o we_o be_v most_o sure_a that_o you_o can_v then_o must_v you_o not_o be_v offend_v if_o we_o think_v that_o you_o set_v up_o your_o rest_n upon_o sequimini_fw-la illum_fw-la the_o follow_v of_o baal_n and_o that_o your_o company_n will_v suit_n better_o with_o beast_n then_o with_o man_n upon_o who_o last_o word_n none_o but_o such_o senseless_a echo_n do_v take_v advantage_n his_o reader_n be_v preiudicial_o possess_v by_o a_o comment_n upon_o the_o last_o word_n he_o imboldn_v himself_o to_o say_v somewhat_o of_o the_o whole_a sentence_n to_o wit_n neither_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o albeit_o his_o holiness_n and_o predecessor_n hitherto_o have_v not_o think_v the_o use_n of_o this_o sacrament_n necessary_a in_o england_n during_o the_o time_n of_o our_o persecution_n as_o indeed_o to_o no_o man_n in_o any_o time_n be_v it_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n therefore_o good_a catholic_n shall_v esteem_v it_o for_o a_o vain_a and_o superfluous_a ceremony_n note_v i_o pray_v you_o the_o pretty_a sleight_n which_o he_o use_v the_o priest_n do_v say_v that_o this_o sacrament_n be_v either_o most_o necessary_a in_o time_n of_o persecution_n or_o else_o a_o vain_a ceremony_n and_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o albeit_o his_o holiness_n have_v not_o think_v it_o necessary_a in_o england_n during_o the_o time_n of_o our_o persecution_n as_o though_o his_o holiness_n can_v not_o think_v that_o this_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n be_v most_o necessary_a in_o the_o time_n of_o persecution_n and_o yet_o not_o judge_v it_o necessary_a here_o and_o now_o in_o our_o persecution_n by_o reason_n of_o such_o misinformation_n as_o may_v be_v give_v he_o as_o if_o for_o example_n any_o shall_v say_v unto_o
the_o pope_n as_o fa_n parson_n say_v to_o m._n charnocke_v at_o rome_n why_o can_v they_o not_o now_o do_v aswell_o without_o it_o as_o heretofore_o or_o some_o other_o perchance_o may_v put_v into_o the_o pope_n head_n that_o which_o some_o jesuite_n put_v into_o some_o of_o the_o catholic_n head_n in_o england_n it_o can_v last_v long_o now_o the_o next_o year_n we_o shall_v have_v mass_n open_o in_o paul_n or_o as_o a_o jesuite_n have_v once_o promise_v a_o gentleman_n in_o recompense_n of_o a_o injury_n do_v unto_o he_o to_o get_v he_o a_o dispensation_n to_o marry_v his_o kinswoman_n and_o be_v sue_v unto_o to_o remember_v his_o promise_n answer_v that_o he_o understand_v that_o the_o card._n allen_n be_v now_o upon_o his_o come_n into_o england_n and_o will_v be_v here_o short_o and_o dispatch_v by_o himself_o this_o and_o many_o other_o such_o case_n upon_o how_o many_o motive_n may_v a_o thing_n from_o one_o small_a time_n to_o a_o other_o be_v defer_v which_o notwithstanding_o may_v be_v think_v necessary_a can_v any_o catholic_a think_v that_o among_o all_o country_n christen_v only_a england_n must_v be_v deprive_v of_o the_o benefit_n of_o this_o sacrament_n and_o that_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v as_o proper_o institute_v to_o strengthen_v christian_n in_o persecution_n as_o baptism_n be_v to_o make_v christian_n must_v not_o be_v grant_v to_o the_o english_a as_o their_o case_n stand_v for_o what_o else_o can_v these_o his_o word_n imply_v albeit_o his_o holiness_n and_o predecessor_n hitherto_o have_v not_o think_v the_o use_n of_o this_o sacrament_n necessary_a in_o england_n during_o the_o time_n of_o our_o persecution_n belike_o than_o it_o be_v necessary_a in_o time_n of_o persecution_n but_o we_o in_o england_n must_v not_o have_v it_o have_v he_o not_o well_o holpen_v the_o matter_n and_o as_o for_o that_o foolish_a parenthesis_n as_o in_o deed_n to_o no_o man_n in_o any_o time_n it_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o what_o end_n be_v it_o here_o bring_v who_o have_v ever_o say_v that_o it_o be_v at_o any_o time_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n baptism_n by_o water_n be_v not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n as_o some_o martyr_n have_v prove_v and_o yet_o our_o saviour_n say_v 3._o john_n 3._o unless_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v again_o by_o water_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o can_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n the_o like_a phrase_n of_o speech_n imply_v necessity_n be_v use_v by_o our_o saviour_n concern_v the_o receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o yet_o no_o man_n do_v say_v 6._o john_n 6._o that_o it_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n this_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o this_o must_v have_v set_v a_o stint_n upon_o the_o power_n of_o god_n but_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o that_o confirmation_n be_v necessary_a in_o time_n of_o persecution_n in_o spain_n if_o you_o will_v when_o god_n shall_v suffer_v it_o or_o in_o italy_n if_o in_o england_n and_o in_o the_o english_a persecution_n it_o be_v not_o think_v necessary_a and_o if_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o at_o the_o least_o somewhere_o this_o sacrament_n be_v necessary_a in_o the_o time_n of_o persecution_n the_o proposition_n which_o the_o priest_n do_v make_v be_v neither_o scandalous_a nor_o temerarious_a nor_o false_a doctrine_n it_o be_v evident_a to_o all_o man_n of_o sense_n that_o the_o one_o part_n of_o a_o disiunctive_a proposition_n be_v true_a the_o whole_a proposition_n be_v true_a as_o for_o example_n if_o a_o man_n say_v of_o a_o swan_n this_o swan_n be_v either_o white_a or_o black_a his_o proposition_n be_v so_o true_a as_o no_o man_n of_o any_o sense_n can_v deny_v it_o although_o it_o be_v a_o most_o ridiculous_a assertion_n to_o say_v that_o the_o swan_n be_v black_a if_o then_o we_o can_v prove_v that_o confirmation_n be_v most_o necessary_a in_o time_n of_o persecution_n he_o will_v be_v prove_v to_o have_v be_v over_o hasty_a who_o snatch_v so_o greedy_o at_o this_o proposition_n it_o be_v either_o most_o necessary_a in_o time_n of_o persecution_n or_o a_o vain_a and_o superfluous_a ceremony_n in_o god_n church_n the_o necessity_n thereof_o in_o time_n of_o persecution_n be_v thus_o prove_v that_o by_o which_o only_o a_o special_a grace_n be_v give_v to_o strengthen_v a_o christian_a against_o the_o assault_n of_o the_o persecutor_n be_v most_o necessary_a in_o time_n of_o persecution_n the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n be_v that_o by_o which_o only_o a_o special_a grace_n be_v give_v to_o strengthen_v a_o christian_a against_o the_o assault_n of_o the_o persecutor_n therefore_o the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n be_v most_o necessary_a in_o time_n of_o persecution_n the_o first_o proposition_n be_v evident_a by_o light_n of_o nature_n the_o second_o proposition_n be_v so_o general_o receive_v of_o all_o catholic_a divine_n as_o they_o do_v anathematise_v whosoever_o deny_v it_o and_o it_o be_v make_v plain_a by_o induction_n for_o in_o baptism_n we_o receive_v grace_n for_o remission_n of_o original_a sin_n and_o all_o other_o if_o we_o have_v any_o at_o the_o receive_n of_o that_o sacrament_n but_o we_o do_v not_o receive_v any_o special_a grace_n to_o resist_v the_o persecutor_n and_o so_o likewise_o do_v we_o receive_v grace_n to_o such_o and_o such_o particular_a end_n by_o all_o the_o other_o sacrament_n but_o the_o grace_n by_o which_o we_o be_v strengthen_v to_o combat_v with_o the_o persecutor_n be_v only_o give_v &_o under_o this_o name_n by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n do_v pope_n vrbane_n as_o he_o be_v cite_v de_fw-la consecra_fw-la do_v 5._o cap._n 1._o affirm_v that_o all_o christian_n must_v be_v confirm_v and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n melchiade_n the_o pope_n be_v cite_v who_o affirm_v that_o the_o help_n which_o we_o have_v by_o confirmation_n be_v necessary_a for_o those_o who_o live_v for_o in_o his_o time_n all_o christian_n live_v in_o persecution_n hosius_n cit_v this_o epistle_n of_o melchiade_n more_o at_o large_a in_o his_o book_n entitle_v confessio_fw-la catholicae_fw-la fidei_fw-la christianae_n cap._n 38._o where_o the_o pope_n compare_v the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n to_o the_o admission_n into_o a_o warrefare_n and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n to_o the_o furniture_n for_o the_o battle_n and_o to_o show_v further_o how_o necessary_a this_o sacrament_n be_v in_o time_n of_o persecution_n he_o appli_v to_o it_o that_o say_n nisi_fw-la dominus_fw-la custodierit_fw-la civitatem_fw-la etc._n etc._n unless_o the_o lord_n keep_v the_o city_n he_o watch_v in_o vain_a who_o keep_v it_o and_o afterward_o to_o this_o doubt_n what_o do_v the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n profit_v the_o apostle_n after_o the_o passion_n and_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n he_o make_v this_o answer_n that_o thereby_o they_o be_v make_v able_a to_o that_o to_o which_o they_o be_v not_o before_o for_o that_o before_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o apostle_n for_o very_a fear_n deny_v christ_n but_o after_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v come_v unto_o they_o they_o be_v arm_v to_o suffer_v martyrdom_n and_o to_o conclude_v this_o pope_n tell_v we_o that_o by_o this_o sacrament_n we_o obtain_v among_o other_o gift_n that_o gift_n of_o understanding_n of_o which_o it_o be_v say_v intellectum_fw-la tibidabo_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o will_v give_v thou_o understanding_n and_o instruct_v thou_o in_o this_o way_n in_o which_o thou_o go_v the_o same_o hosius_n in_o the_o same_o chapter_n cit_v s._n clement_n who_o succeed_v s._n peter_n and_o cornelius_n who_o attribute_v the_o fall_n of_o novatus_fw-la the_o heretic_n to_o the_o want_n of_o this_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n for_o novatus_fw-la fall_v dangerous_o sick_a after_o that_o he_o be_v dispossess_v be_v baptize_v but_o not_o confirm_v as_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n this_o epistle_n be_v in_o the_o 6._o book_n of_o eusebius_n his_o ecclesiastical_a history_n cap._n 43._o by_o these_o and_o other_o the_o like_a do_v hosius_n prove_v that_o baptism_n be_v for_o those_o that_o come_v in_o confirmation_n for_o those_o who_o fight_n king_n henry_n the_o 8._o in_o his_o book_n against_o martin_n luther_n have_v discourse_v upon_o this_o sacrament_n cit_v those_o word_n out_o of_o hugo_n de_fw-fr s._n victore_fw-la illic_fw-la gratia_fw-la tribuitur_fw-la adremissionem_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la hîc_fw-la gratia_fw-la datur_fw-la ad_fw-la confirmationem_fw-la quid_fw-la autem_fw-la prodest_fw-la si_fw-la à_fw-la lapsu_fw-la erigeris_fw-la nisi_fw-la ad_fw-la standum_fw-la confirmeris_fw-la that_o be_v there_o that_o be_v by_o baptism_n be_v grace_n give_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n here_o that_o be_v by_o confirmation_n be_v grace_n give_v for_o
those_o who_o will_v not_o listen_v to_o the_o spirit_n which_o call_v they_o to_o be_v jesuit_n be_v enforce_v to_o spend_v their_o time_n with_o less_o quietness_n and_o consequent_o with_o less_o profit_n than_o otherwise_o they_o may_v neither_o be_v it_o here_o needful_a to_o stand_v upon_o the_o catholic_n their_o blush_n to_o ask_v help_n now_o of_o the_o jesuit_n for_o their_o help_n be_v as_o they_o have_v be_v a_o long_a time_n as_o we_o fear_v upon_o such_o condition_n as_o all_o honest_a man_n must_v blush_v if_o they_o do_v ask_v they_o and_o those_o who_o be_v as_o ready_a to_o further_o the_o jesuit_n plot_n as_o themselves_o a_o notable_a abuse_n of_o the_o catholic_a king_n his_o charity_n to_o poor_a catholic_n be_v neither_o drive_v to_o ask_v help_n nor_o to_o blush_v when_o they_o take_v it_o although_o their_o help_n be_v so_o prudent_o offer_v as_o few_o do_v surfeit_n upon_o it_o have_v thus_o lay_v his_o plot_n to_o bring_v the_o priest_n into_o contempt_n now_o he_o imploi_v himself_o to_o bring_v they_o into_o hatred_n with_o the_o catholic_n by_o affirm_v that_o they_o conspire_v with_o the_o very_a enemy_n against_o their_o own_o which_o be_v most_o false_a for_o if_o matter_n of_o religion_n be_v in_o question_n the_o priest_n be_v ready_a to_o join_v rather_o with_o the_o lewd_a catholic_a in_o the_o world_n then_o with_o the_o protestant_n although_o when_o matter_n of_o treachery_n against_o their_o prince_n and_o country_n be_v handle_v they_o be_v as_o ready_a to_o defy_v the_o plotter_n thereof_o be_v they_o the_o most_o zealous_a catholic_n in_o the_o world_n sure_o we_o be_v that_o this_o author_n can_v just_o challenge_v we_o that_o we_o have_v swerve_v one_o jot_n from_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o his_o accusation_n must_v needs_o sound_v evil_a in_o the_o ear_n of_o upright_a judge_n when_o he_o say_v we_o conspire_v against_o our_o own_o i_o wish_v also_o that_o it_o be_v not_o too_o sure_a that_o the_o jesuit_n &_o their_o adherent_n have_v thrust_v themselves_o into_o conspiracy_n against_o their_o own_o if_o either_o their_o prince_n and_o their_o country_n or_o catholic_a priest_n be_v their_o own_o for_o it_o be_v so_o palpable_a as_o every_o man_n may_v feel_v it_o how_o they_o have_v thrust_v in_o not_o only_o their_o advice_n but_o their_o person_n in_o action_n against_o their_o prince_n and_o country_n &_o against_o catholic_a priest_n what_o great_a conspiracy_n can_v have_v be_v make_v then_o have_v be_v by_o their_o slanderous_a tongue_n and_o infamatory_n libel_n of_o schism_n disperse_v against_o they_o whereby_o they_o have_v declare_v that_o they_o have_v give_v hand_n to_o all_o sort_n of_o enemy_n aswell_o ghostly_a as_o visible_a against_o their_o own_o in_o which_o their_o union_n the_o priest_n have_v no_o reason_n to_o join_v themselves_o now_o do_v follow_v certain_a exception_n against_o some_o marginal_a note_n make_v in_o the_o book_n dedicate_v to_o his_o holiness_n for_o example_n in_o the_o 23_o page_n there_o be_v this_o note_n in_o the_o margin_n jesuitae_n quaesua_fw-la sunt_fw-la quaerunt_fw-la which_o this_o author_n english_v thus_o jesuit_n seek_v their_o own_o and_o not_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v more_o then_o be_v in_o the_o latin_a or_o perchance_o more_o than_o be_v mean_v by_o that_o latin_a or_o can_v be_v honest_o gather_v the_o priest_n not_o cite_v the_o place_n of_o scripture_n to_o which_o this_o author_n allude_v and_o upon_o his_o own_o addition_n he_o discourse_v somewhat_o in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o chapter_n &_o conclude_v that_o they_o have_v seek_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o error_n than_o be_v that_o the_o priest_n put_v this_o word_n sva_fw-la where_o they_o shall_v have_v put_v jesu_n christi_n &_o have_v make_v the_o note_n more_o true_a in_o this_o manner_n the_o jesuit_n seek_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o belike_o the_o jesuit_n have_v no_o list_n to_o busy_v themselves_o where_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v have_v which_o they_o must_v do_v if_o they_o seek_v sva_fw-la their_o own_o they_o do_v rather_o seek_v where_o there_o be_v some_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n to_o be_v bestow_v upon_o the_o poor_a catholic_n &_o priest_n who_o be_v in_o want_n which_o alm_n be_v jesu_n christi_fw-la belong_v to_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o note_n have_v stand_v very_o well_o to_o this_o sense_n jesuitae_n quae_fw-la jesu_fw-la christi_fw-la sunt_fw-la quaerunt_fw-la the_o jesuit_n do_v seek_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v jesu_n christ_n the_o other_o note_v this_o fellow_n call_v they_o trifle_n &_o he_o may_v very_o well_o have_v leave_v they_o as_o many_o other_o for_o he_o do_v but_o stir_v up_o a_o desire_n in_o the_o reader_n to_o look_v upon_o the_o book_n whence_o these_o note_n be_v take_v where_o he_o shall_v find_v matter_n enough_o to_o make_v more_o displease_a note_n than_o these_o be_v which_o be_v here_o pick_v out_o yet_o that_o note_n concern_v the_o seminary_n must_v in_o no_o case_n be_v omit_v although_o it_o have_v be_v often_o answer_v that_o they_o be_v more_o to_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o jesuit_n then_o to_o england_n have_v therein_o such_o as_o they_o use_v or_o abuse_v rather_o for_o the_o further_a of_o their_o present_a state-plot_n &_o a_o good_a assurance_n that_o the_o college_n in_o spain_n be_v to_o fall_v to_o their_o share_n hereafter_o the_o lamentable_a state_n into_o which_o the_o college_n of_o rome_n be_v bring_v will_v be_v declare_v at_o large_a in_o a_o treatise_n thereof_o the_o college_n of_o douai_n be_v bring_v into_o these_o term_n under_o pretence_n of_o poverty_n as_o no_o man_n be_v to_o be_v admit_v thereunto_o of_o who_o there_o be_v not_o great_a hope_n that_o he_o will_v become_v of_o the_o jesuit_n faction_n the_o cardinal_n protector_n will_v perchance_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o stint_n until_o the_o debt_n be_v pay_v &_o this_o be_v use_v for_o a_o colour_n to_o admit_v or_o reject_v who_o the_o jesuit_n listen_v if_o one_o be_v present_v thither_o who_o the_o jesuit_n like_v not_o than_o the_o college_n debt_n be_v to_o be_v pay_v if_o it_o be_v one_o who_o be_v likely_a to_o be_v factious_a for_o they_o the_o college_n have_v credit_n for_o his_o admittance_n and_o if_o he_o be_v one_o who_o friend_n will_v maintain_v he_o than_o he_o shall_v go_v to_o s._n omers_n after_o some_o circumstance_n where_o the_o jesuit_n will_v have_v care_n for_o the_o pious_a distribution_n of_o that_o which_o he_o have_v and_o nothing_o be_v aught_o worth_a which_o have_v not_o some_o great_a providence_n or_o piety_n at_o one_o end_n thereof_o to_o conclude_v in_o this_o chapter_n the_o author_n do_v little_a other_o then_o weary_a his_o reader_n with_o those_o idle_a matter_n which_o he_o have_v before_o bring_v to_o prove_v emulation_n and_o faction_n in_o all_o place_n and_o action_n where_o jesuit_n have_v have_v any_o thing_n to_o do_v and_o to_o the_o ostentation_n of_o the_o jesuit_n action_n he_o add_v some_o little_a of_o the_o zeal_n of_o the_o priest_n which_o will_v prove_v that_o the_o good_a priest_n dwell_v far_o from_o good_a neighbour_n if_o i_o think_v fol._n 21_o and_o such_o like_a slip_n do_v not_o discharge_v the_o unite_a priest_n from_o all_o the_o suspicion_n of_o write_v this_o apology_n as_o by_o the_o title_n he_o will_v that_o the_o reader_n shall_v believe_v chap._n 9_o how_o this_o author_n pursue_v his_o impertinent_a discourse_n of_o trouble_n among_o the_o english_a in_o flaunders_n france_n italy_n and_o spain_n apol._n cap._n 4._o in_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o this_o apology_n the_o author_n intend_v to_o show_v how_o great_o the_o card._n allen_n and_o other_o of_o our_o nation_n be_v injury_v by_o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v against_o the_o jesuit_n and_o what_o injury_n be_v also_o offer_v to_o the_o cardinal_n borromaeo_n and_o toledo_n and_o his_o holiness_n himself_o and_o for_o his_o exordium_n he_o declare_v how_o all_o sort_n do_v seek_v company_n to_o approve_v and_o authorise_v their_o action_n belike_o it_o be_v not_o forget_v as_o yet_o how_o the_o jesuit_n have_v canuase_v not_o only_o in_o flaunders_n among_o the_o soldier_n religious_a woman_n and_o artificer_n for_o voice_n in_o commendation_n of_o themselves_o but_o also_o here_o in_o england_n hope_v that_o the_o number_n of_o such_o as_o can_v be_v get_v by_o bribe_n flattery_n or_o threat_n may_v in_o time_n overpease_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o cause_n now_o in_o controversy_n the_o first_o proof_n which_o be_v here_o bring_v to_o declare_v the_o card._n allen_n his_o love_n and_o affection_n to_o the_o jesuite_n be_v out_o of_o his_o letter_n write_v to_o m._n much_o of_o which_o we_o have_v discourse_v before_o
can_v not_o suffice_v to_o maintain_v the_o pastor_n at_o the_o least_o after_o so_o mean_v a_o rate_n as_o we_o do_v conceive_v in_o be_v keep_v in_o diet_n and_o apparel_n in_o the_o jesuite_n seminary_n and_o this_o dislike_n in_o the_o cardinal_n of_o the_o jesuit_n government_n of_o his_o seminary_n may_v stand_v with_o a_o opinion_n that_o many_o of_o they_o be_v good_a man_n and_o to_o be_v use_v otherwise_o as_o also_o the_o cardinal_n tollet_fw-la may_v conceive_v of_o they_o how_o evil_a soever_o some_o of_o they_o behave_v themselves_o in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o english_a college_n at_o rome_n last_o whereas_o the_o priest_n be_v here_o challenge_v to_o have_v do_v injury_n to_o his_o holiness_n for_o that_o his_o exhortation_n to_o the_o jesuite_n in_o their_o general_a congregation_n be_v remember_v by_o they_o be_v a_o very_a foolish_a conceit_n of_o this_o author_n as_o also_o that_o he_o will_v have_v we_o to_o think_v that_o his_o holiness_n do_v exhort_v the_o capuchin_n to_o lay_v down_o their_o pomp_n who_o be_v general_o know_v to_o use_v none_o but_o as_o this_o author_n say_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o chapter_n all_o sort_n seek_v company_n and_o of_o all_o other_o the_o jesuite_n love_v the_o capuchin_n because_o they_o desire_v nothing_o chap._n 10._o how_o the_o stir_n in_o the_o english_a college_n at_o rome_n begin_v the_o cause_n whereof_o this_o apologie-maker_n do_v seek_v to_o colour_n and_o to_o lay_v it_o where_o it_o shall_v seem_v it_o be_v not_o apo._n cap._n 5._o in_o the_o five_o chapter_n this_o author_n treat_v of_o the_o great_a trouble_n which_o be_v raise_v in_o the_o english_a college_n at_o rome_n after_o the_o card._n allen_n his_o death_n and_o challenge_v the_o priest_n of_o imprudencie_n for_o bring_v they_o in_o now_o again_o and_o defend_v they_o in_o their_o book_n and_o forsomuch_o as_o this_o chapter_n do_v whole_o consist_v of_o this_o point_n here_o be_v little_a to_o be_v say_v thereof_o the_o story_n be_v particular_o set_v down_o by_o such_o as_o to_o who_o these_o thing_n do_v principal_o appertain_v only_o these_o few_o matter_n be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o whereas_o this_o author_n will_v make_v show_n that_o the_o jesuite_n be_v draw_v into_o the_o government_n of_o that_o college_n there_o be_v priest_n yet_o live_v who_o will_v justify_v that_o they_o be_v solicit_v by_o the_o jesuit_n to_o take_v they_o for_o governor_n which_o how_o willing_o soever_o and_o sincere_o the_o student_n then_o perform_v be_v carry_v away_o as_o many_o yet_o be_v though_o not_o so_o faulty_o as_o those_o who_o be_v now_o delude_v therewith_o with_o the_o religious_a name_n of_o some_o who_o little_o deserve_v it_o m._n sherwine_n who_o be_v here_o name_v in_o this_o chapter_n say_v not_o long_o after_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o some_o from_o who_o mouth_n we_o write_v it_o that_o they_o have_v do_v they_o know_v not_o what_o what_o will_v he_o have_v say_v if_o he_o have_v live_v to_o see_v this_o love_n unto_o the_o jesuit_n use_v by_o the_o same_o jesuit_n to_o bring_v the_o secular_a priest_n into_o hatred_n even_o with_o such_o as_o will_v they_o will_v they_o must_v take_v they_o for_o their_o pastor_n as_o all_o the_o world_n do_v and_o have_v do_v and_o have_v prosper_v in_o soul_n health_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 1500_o year_n and_o more_o before_o this_o society_n surname_v of_o jesus_n be_v begin_v and_o whereas_o there_o be_v a_o touch_n here_o also_o of_o some_o trouble_v raise_v in_o that_o college_n not_o long_o after_o the_o foundation_n thereof_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o they_o grow_v upon_o the_o jesuit_n their_o deal_n with_o the_o student_n to_o become_v jesuit_n which_o how_o pious_a soever_o the_o desire_n be_v in_o the_o one_o to_o dispose_v or_o in_o the_o other_o to_o attain_v to_o a_o high_a perfection_n be_v a_o trouble_n to_o the_o rest_n who_o grow_v in_o contempt_n with_o the_o new_a inspire_v and_o be_v much_o less_o regard_v of_o the_o jesuit_n but_o these_o trouble_n be_v quiet_o end_v within_o the_o college_n after_o that_o the_o student_n perceive_v that_o the_o jesuit_n notwithstanding_o their_o public_a protestation_n to_o the_o contrary_a do_v underhand_o practice_v themselves_o &_o bear_v some_o other_o out_o which_o be_v their_o chief_a instrument_n in_o this_o action_n and_o this_o be_v the_o true_a solution_n of_o that_o riddle_n which_o be_v in_o more_o general_a term_n relate_v in_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o the_o apology_n fol._n 170_o where_n speak_v of_o m._n much_o the_o author_n affirm_v that_o no_o other_o thing_n ever_o wrought_v the_o father_n more_o trouble_n in_o the_o college_n while_o this_o man_n be_v there_o than_o their_o overmuch_o love_n and_o favour_n to_o he_o above_o his_o merit_n as_o other_o man_n think_v to_o wit_n when_o the_o rector_n be_v inform_v that_o have_v at_o that_o time_n devote_a himself_o to_o the_o jesuit_n as_o also_o there_o it_o be_v sufficient_o insinuate_v he_o use_v to_o persuade_v the_o student_n to_o become_v jesuit_n and_o the_o profess_v be_v very_o evident_a the_o jesuit_n will_v never_o believe_v it_o and_o their_o trouble_n grow_v by_o devise_v sleight_n to_o save_v he_o from_o blame_n have_v offend_v in_o that_o for_o which_o in_o public_a sermon_n the_o jesuit_n will_v often_o protest_v whosoever_o he_o be_v that_o shall_v use_v it_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o same_o day_n turn_v out_o of_o the_o college_n these_o trouble_n be_v end_v and_o the_o scholar_n acquiet_v as_o see_v no_o remedy_n without_o further_a trouble_n and_o content_v to_o bear_v what_o be_v offer_v they_o by_o this_o new_a spirit_n which_o first_o begin_v to_o be_v the_o overthrow_v of_o that_o college_n and_o now_o of_o england_n other_o begin_v in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n xistus_fw-la of_o holy_a memory_n and_o then_o there_o be_v a_o visitation_n make_v in_o the_o college_n but_o what_o the_o cause_n be_v thereof_o we_o do_v not_o understand_v if_o this_o author_n can_v do_v any_o thing_n impudent_o doubtless_o he_o show_v his_o weakness_n in_o bring_v this_o matter_n for_o as_o we_o be_v inform_v those_o who_o be_v repute_v the_o chief_a in_o that_o faction_n since_o they_o come_v into_o england_n not_o find_v belike_o such_o among_o the_o secular_a priest_n as_o can_v sort_v with_o that_o humour_n have_v betake_v themselves_o to_o the_o jesuit_n order_n and_o some_o of_o they_o who_o be_v now_o in_o england_n be_v as_o factious_a in_o their_o religious_a humour_n as_o they_o be_v busy_a before_o against_o the_o same_o religious_a order_n chap._n 11._o how_o this_o author_n beslir_v himself_o to_o lay_v the_o fault_n of_o the_o scandalous_a division_n in_o wisbich_n upon_o those_o priest_n who_o will_v not_o subject_v themselves_o to_o that_o insolent_a agencie_n of_o the_o jesuit_n apol._n cap._n 6._o the_o sixth_o chapter_n of_o the_o apology_n be_v of_o the_o trouble_n which_o be_v raise_v among_o catholic_a prisoner_n in_o wisbich_n the_o beginning_n whereof_o this_o author_n affirm_v that_o the_o priest_n do_v declare_v in_o the_o latin_a book_n pag._n 11._o to_o have_v be_v a_o repine_n in_o themselves_o that_o their_o fellow_n will_v have_v certain_a rule_n of_o orderly_a live_n which_o be_v most_o false_a for_o they_o have_v always_o attribute_v the_o cause_n of_o these_o stir_n to_o the_o separation_n which_o the_o jesuit_n and_o their_o adherent_n make_v from_o they_o because_o they_o will_v not_o subject_v themselves_o too_o f._n weston_n the_o jesuite_n as_o a_o new_a illuminate_v under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o agent_n which_o i_o leave_v to_o those_o to_o who_o it_o appertain_v to_o discover_v if_o this_o apology_n minister_v occasion_n to_o say_v more_o than_o have_v already_o be_v say_v of_o these_o matter_n and_o whereas_o this_o author_n promise_v to_o put_v down_o authentical_a information_n and_o original_n against_o the_o narration_n which_o be_v already_o make_v of_o these_o stir_n he_o bring_v his_o proof_n only_o out_o of_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o jesuit_n and_o their_o faction_n who_o be_v and_o be_v party_n in_o the_o controversy_n and_o although_o the_o testimony_n of_o fisher_n may_v seem_v to_o some_o to_o be_v of_o some_o weight_n against_o the_o priest_n as_o have_v be_v sometime_o a_o enemy_n to_o the_o jesuit_n yet_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o move_v any_o man_n of_o discretion_n what_o he_o say_v against_o they_o for_o if_o the_o author_n of_o this_o apology_n be_v of_o any_o credit_n fisher_n mst_o be_v of_o no_o credit_n for_o in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n fol._n 93._o fisher_n be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o exorbitant_a disorderly_a fellow_n in_o the_o roman_a stir_n and_o profess_v to_o have_v be_v now_o more_o then_o half_o convert_v fol._n 94._o what_o be_v
any_o authority_n but_o such_o as_o be_v orderly_o procure_v and_o lawful_o promulgate_v be_v no_o whit_n weaken_v with_o this_o idle_a question_n who_o shall_v be_v judge_n of_o this_o for_o it_o be_v easy_o answer_v that_o man_n of_o understanding_n and_o learning_n may_v judge_v whether_o a_o thing_n be_v orderly_o procure_v and_o lawful_o promulge_v and_o the_o judgement_n be_v give_v for_o the_o priest_n who_o not_o trust_v to_o their_o own_o learning_n send_v to_o paris_n where_o their_o judgement_n be_v confirm_v and_o have_v since_o also_o be_v determine_v by_o his_o holiness_n that_o howsoever_o it_o be_v procure_v it_o be_v not_o promulge_v so_o as_o it_o bind_v the_o priest_n to_o obey_v it_o neither_o do_v it_o therefore_o follow_v that_o every_o subject_n be_v to_o examine_v his_o superior_n ordinance_n nor_o be_v it_o absurd_a that_o man_n see_v cause_n why_o they_o shall_v doubt_v shall_v seek_v to_o help_v themselves_o by_o deal_v with_o their_o superior_a as_o the_o priest_n do_v who_o present_o upon_o the_o first_o knowledge_n of_o this_o authority_n perceive_v what_o they_o do_v send_v to_o rome_n to_o his_o holiness_n from_o who_o it_o be_v say_v to_o come_v when_o contrary_a to_o the_o custom_n and_o law_n of_o holy_a church_n it_o come_v without_o any_o his_o holiness_n letter_n as_o it_o be_v after_o confess_v in_o this_o apology_n here_o he_o may_v allege_v he_o say_v the_o whole_a course_n of_o ancient_a holy_a father_n say_n about_o prompt_a ready_a and_o simple_a obedience_n most_o opposite_a and_o contradictory_n to_o this_o vain_a doctrine_n of_o these_o our_o brethren_n but_o if_o he_o mean_v the_o vain_a of_o doctrine_n which_o he_o say_v be_v in_o the_o preface_n to_o the_o reader_n and_o be_v impugn_a by_o he_o as_o perilous_a and_o scandalous_a doctrine_n then_o doubtless_o he_o can_v bring_v the_o say_n of_o any_o ancient_a holy_a father_n against_o it_o nor_o of_o any_o catholic_a new_a father_n if_o he_o mean_v that_o the_o priest_n do_v argue_v against_o prompt_a and_o ready_a obedience_n as_o a_o matter_n not_o worthy_a commendation_n he_o do_v but_o mock_v his_o reader_n for_o the_o priest_n do_v high_o commend_v it_o as_o a_o most_o rare_a virtue_n if_o he_o mean_v that_o the_o ancient_a holy_a father_n do_v so_o high_o commend_v prompt_a obedience_n as_o they_o do_v condemn_v all_o delay_n to_o obey_v the_o commandment_n of_o a_o superior_a upon_o what_o cause_n soever_o as_o sinful_a he_o be_v in_o a_o very_a gross_a error_n for_o as_o we_o have_v before_o cite_v out_o of_o the_o chapter_n si_fw-mi quando_fw-la de_fw-la rescriptis_fw-la pope_n alexander_n the_o three_o write_v this_o to_o the_o arbishop_n of_o ravenna_n qualitatem_fw-la negotij_fw-la pro_fw-la quo_fw-la tibi_fw-la scribitur_fw-la diligenter_n considerans_fw-la aut_fw-la mandatum_fw-la nostrum_fw-la reverenter_fw-la adimpleas_fw-la aut_fw-la per_fw-la literas_fw-la tuas_fw-la quare_fw-la adimplere_fw-la non_fw-la possis_fw-la rationabilem_fw-la causam_fw-la pretendas_fw-la quia_fw-la patient_fw-la sustinebimus_fw-la si_fw-la non_fw-la feceris_fw-la quod_fw-la prava_fw-la nobis_fw-la fuerit_fw-la insinuatione_fw-la suggestum_fw-la have_v consider_v upon_o that_o for_o which_o we_o write_v unto_o you_o either_o with_o reverence_n fulfil_v our_o commandment_n or_o pretend_v some_o reasonable_a cause_n by_o your_o letter_n why_o you_o can_v fulfil_v it_o for_o we_o will_v bear_v it_o patient_o if_o you_o shall_v not_o do_v that_o which_o be_v suggest_v unto_o we_o with_o evil_a information_n or_o insinuation_n by_o which_o &_o other_o such_o authentical_a warrant_n will_v all_o the_o corrollary_n of_o gregory_n of_o valemcia_n be_v answer_v if_o we_o shall_v agree_v that_o the_o priest_n be_v command_v any_o thing_n by_o a_o superior_a which_o they_o do_v not_o obey_v but_o this_o can_v never_o be_v prove_v for_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o do_v see_v his_o haul_v letter_n they_o do_v obey_v as_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o pope_n own_o letter_n or_o breve_fw-la of_o the_o 17._o of_o august_n 1601._o and_o other_o superior_a they_o know_v not_o that_o can_v make_v a_o archpriest_n among_o they_o with_o these_o appertenance_n whether_o then_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o cardinal_n do_v it_o himself_o or_o that_o he_o say_v the_o pope_n do_v it_o it_o be_v not_o great_o material_a for_o if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o cardinal_n do_v it_o of_o himself_o we_o ask_v by_o what_o authority_n if_o you_o say_v by_o his_o own_o we_o say_v that_o he_o have_v none_o or_o if_o he_o have_v and_o have_v show_v it_o he_o have_v be_v obey_v if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o pope_n do_v it_o we_o ask_v how_o this_o appear_v if_o you_o say_v by_o the_o cardinal_n testimony_n we_o say_v it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o bind_v under_o sin_n to_o obey_v it_o and_o this_o be_v prove_v by_o m._n i.b._n in_o the_o hope_n of_o peace_n pag._n 32._o and_o 33_o and_o by_o m._n john_n collington_n at_o large_a in_o his_o first_o reason_n and_o by_o m.d._n ely_n in_o his_o note_n upon_o the_o apology_n who_o handle_v this_o question_n from_o the_o 117._o pag._n to_o 233._o it_o follow_v in_o the_o apology_n and_o all_o this_o now_o be_v about_o the_o first_o kind_n of_o formal_a disobedience_n wherein_o there_o must_v be_v some_o actual_a contempt_n with_o reflection_n which_o be_v as_o out_o of_o caietane_n you_o have_v hear_v a_o intention_n not_o to_o obey_v and_o will_v to_o god_n this_o also_o be_v not_o too_o open_o see_v in_o this_o fact_n of_o our_o brethren_n and_o their_o perseverance_n therein_o from_o this_o kind_n then_o of_o disobedience_n it_o be_v for_o the_o priest_n to_o purge_v themselves_o and_o from_o the_o imputation_n thereof_o how_o unjust_o then_o be_v m._n champney_n blame_v who_o to_o purge_v himself_o of_o this_o kind_n of_o disobedience_n do_v first_o show_v what_o this_o disobedience_n be_v why_o be_v his_o doctrine_n carp_v at_o when_o his_o adversary_n be_v force_v to_o say_v no_o less_o than_o he_o say_v that_o disobedience_n as_o disobedience_n or_o disobedience_n wherewith_o he_o be_v charge_v do_v imply_v contempt_n resistance_n or_o impugnation_n etc._n etc._n and_o to_o what_o end_n have_v we_o now_o a_o tale_n of_o a_o material_a disobedience_n which_o be_v only_o commit_v by_o steal_v or_o covet_v or_o by_o such_o like_a listen_v i_o pray_v you_o to_o another_o strange_a lecture_n which_o this_o apologie-maker_n will_v give_v you_o but_o now_o beside_o this_o formal_a kind_n of_o disobedience_n there_o be_v another_o kind_n of_o material_a disobedience_n when_o a_o man_n leave_v to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v command_v not_o with_o intention_n or_o reflection_n he_o will_v not_o obey_v or_o do_v contemn_v his_o superior_a but_o only_o that_o he_o do_v either_o omit_v that_o which_o be_v command_v or_o do_v some_o other_o thing_n contrary_a thereunto_o and_o in_o this_o kind_n be_v it_o to_o be_v presume_v that_o the_o disobedience_n of_o adam_n achan_n saul_n and_o other_o be_v we_o do_v common_o understand_v sin_n of_o omission_n to_o be_v against_o affirmative_a precept_n it_o will_v therefore_o be_v explicate_v what_o affirmative_a precept_n be_v give_v to_o adam_n achan_n and_o saul_n or_o else_o this_o first_o kind_n of_o material_a disobedience_n may_v have_v be_v spare_v it_o be_v no_o more_o proper_a to_o material_a disobedience_n then_o to_o formal_a and_o so_o do_v gregory_n of_o valencia_n affirm_v of_o formal_a disobedience_n disp_n 7._o quaest_n 3_o puncto_fw-la 3._o frequenter_a autem_fw-la eiusmodi_fw-la in_o obedientia_fw-la formalis_fw-la per_fw-la omissionem_fw-la accidere_fw-la potest_fw-la etc._n etc._n altera_fw-la inobedientia_fw-la formalis_fw-la est_fw-la per_fw-la commissionem_fw-la formal_a disobedience_n may_v often_o be_v commit_v by_o omission_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o other_o formal_a disobedience_n be_v by_o commission_n but_o to_o return_v no_o more_o to_o this_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o commandment_n which_o god_n give_v to_o adam_n concern_v the_o apple_n which_o commandment_n this_o author_n say_v adam_n do_v simple_o disobey_v be_v a_o negative_a precept_n in_o this_o manner_n de_fw-fr ligno_fw-la autem_fw-la scientiae_fw-la boni_fw-la &_o maline_a comedas_fw-la eat_v not_o of_o the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a likewise_o the_o commandment_n give_v to_o achan_n be_v a_o negative_a precept_n vos_fw-fr autem_fw-la cavete_fw-la ne_fw-la de_fw-la hijs_fw-la quae_fw-la precepta_fw-la sunt_fw-la vobis_fw-la quicquam_fw-la contingatis_fw-la take_v heed_n you_o touch_v not_o any_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o you_o be_v forbid_v the_o precept_n likewise_o which_o samuel_n give_v to_o saul_n be_v a_o negative_a precept_n non_fw-la parcas_fw-la ei_fw-la &_o non_fw-la concupiscas_fw-la ex_fw-la rebus_fw-la ipsius_fw-la aliquid_fw-la spare_v they_o not_o the_o amalekite_n neither_o covet_v any_o thing_n which_o be_v they_o and_o consequent_o these_o sin_n be_v sin_n of_o commission_n and_o not_o of_o omission_n
unless_o we_o take_v omission_n so_o general_o as_o it_o may_v include_v all_o the_o sin_n in_o the_o world_n for_o that_o by_o sin_v a_o man_n omit_v to_o fulfil_v that_o which_o he_o be_v command_v in_o which_o sense_n there_o be_v no_o sin_n but_o there_o be_v a_o omission_n as_o a_o condition_n include_v in_o it_o as_o gregory_n of_o valentia_n speak_v of_o material_a disobedience_n in_o the_o place_n cite_v quae-materialis_a inobedientia_fw-la nihil_fw-la aliude_v quàm_fw-la transgressio_fw-la cuiuscunque_fw-la praecepti_fw-la in_fw-la materia_fw-la cuiusuis_fw-la virtutis_fw-la atque_fw-la ita_fw-la non_fw-la distinguitur_fw-la ab_fw-la alijs_fw-la peccatis_fw-la sed_fw-la est_fw-la conditio_fw-la quaedam_fw-la generalis_fw-la inclusa_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la peccatis_fw-la hoc_fw-la ipso_fw-la quod_fw-la peccatum_fw-la omne_fw-la est_fw-la contra_fw-la praeceptum_fw-la material_a disobedience_n be_v nought_o else_o but_o a_o transgression_n of_o every_o precept_n in_o the_o subject_n or_o matter_n of_o every_o virtue_n insomuch_o as_o it_o be_v not_o distinguish_v from_o the_o other_o sin_n but_o be_v a_o certain_a general_a condition_n include_v in_o all_o sin_n in_o that_o every_o sin_n be_v against_o the_o commandment_n therefore_o although_o there_o be_v a_o omission_n include_v in_o every_o sin_n and_o the_o sinner_n may_v just_o be_v say_v to_o have_v omit_v as_o there_o be_v a_o disobedience_n in_o every_o sin_n and_o the_o sinner_n may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v disobey_v yet_o be_v he_o no_o more_o to_o be_v say_v to_o have_v sin_v by_o omission_n then_o by_o disobedience_n but_o by_o do_v this_o or_o that_o for_o example_n by_o theft_n or_o murder_n and_o such_o like_a this_o part_n then_o of_o material_a disobedience_n as_o our_o author_n call_v it_o or_o as_o gregory_n of_o valentia_n say_v of_o formal_a disobedience_n be_v show_v not_o to_o have_v place_n in_o the_o sin_n of_o adam_n achan_n &_o saul_n let_v we_o see_v how_o handsome_o their_o sin_n will_v be_v deduce_v to_o the_o other_o branch_n of_o material_a disobedience_n which_o here_o this_o author_n spread_v or_o do_v say_v he_o some_o other_o thing_n contrary_a thereunto_o that_o be_v contrary_a to_o that_o which_o be_v command_v now_o we_o be_v to_o ask_v how_o or_o in_o what_o sort_n a_o man_n be_v say_v to_o do_v some_o other_o thing_n contrary_a to_o that_o which_o he_o be_v command_v if_o a_o man_n be_v bid_v to_o go_v upon_o the_o right_a hand_n he_o be_v proper_o say_v to_o do_v some_o other_o thing_n contrary_a to_o that_o he_o be_v command_v if_o he_o go_v upon_o the_o left_a hand_n for_o it_o be_v another_o thing_n and_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o commandment_n likewise_o if_o a_o man_n be_v bid_v to_o stand_v still_o and_o not_o move_v if_o he_o do_v run_v he_o do_v some_o other_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o commandment_n or_o if_o any_o other_o man_n can_v better_o explicate_v what_o it_o be_v to_o do_v some_o other_o thing_n contrary_a to_o a_o commandment_n i_o will_v willing_o learn_v of_o he_o this_o author_n then_o when_o he_o will_v reduce_v the_o sin_n of_o adam_n to_o this_o kind_n of_o material_a disobedience_n who_o be_v to_o do_v some_o other_o thing_n contrary_a to_o that_o which_o be_v command_v in_o my_o understanding_n he_o know_v not_o what_o he_o say_v adam_n be_v command_v that_o he_o shall_v not_o eat_v the_o apple_n now_o i_o will_v know_v what_o be_v adam_n disobedience_n this_o author_n fol._n 111._o affirm_v that_o adam_n do_v simple_o disobey_v by_o eat_v the_o apple_n which_o be_v forbid_v but_o now_o what_o will_v he_o say_v for_o he_o have_v bring_v adam_n offence_n in_o the_o roll_n of_o do_v some_o other_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o commandment_n and_o if_o adam_n sin_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o simple_a disobedience_n by_o eat_v the_o apple_n as_o he_o say_v fol._n 111._o then_o be_v not_o adam_n sin_n a_o material_a disobedience_n in_o that_o kind_n which_o here_o he_o put_v because_o he_o do_v no_o other_o thing_n contrary_a to_o that_o which_o be_v command_v but_o do_v the_o very_a same_o thing_n which_o he_o be_v command_v he_o shall_v not_o do_v such_o likewise_o be_v the_o sin_n of_o achan_n who_o be_v command_v not_o to_o touch_v any_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o amalekite_n he_o do_v the_o very_a same_o thing_n which_o he_o be_v command_v he_o shall_v not_o do_v and_o so_o do_v saul_n likewise_o the_o very_a same_o thing_n which_o he_o be_v forbid_v to_o do_v so_o that_o the_o sin_n of_o adam_n achan_n or_o saul_n be_v not_o material_a disobedience_n unless_o this_o author_n can_v find_v better_a mean_n to_o prove_v it_o or_o to_o reduce_v they_o to_o some_o other_o branch_n thereof_o then_o here_o be_v specify_v to_o wit_n that_o he_o commit_v a_o material_a disobedience_n who_o only_o do_v either_o omit_v that_o which_o be_v command_v or_o do_v some_o other_o thing_n contrary_a thereunto_o and_o thus_o do_v he_o leave_v the_o sin_n of_o adam_n achan_n and_o saul_n and_o neither_o will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v sin_n of_o formal_a disobedience_n nor_o be_v able_a to_o show_v how_o they_o be_v sin_n of_o material_a disobedience_n and_o yet_o he_o go_v on_o and_o talk_v what_o divine_v do_v hold_v mary_n if_o you_o will_v have_v this_o fellow_n favour_n you_o must_v always_o remember_v with_o s._n thomas_n before_o cite_v that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a the_o superior_n will_v do_v appear_v quocunque_fw-la modo_fw-la by_o what_o mean_v soever_o that_o be_v according_a to_o this_o author_n conceit_n if_o you_o be_v tell_v it_o although_o it_o be_v in_o such_o sort_n as_o you_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o give_v any_o credit_n unto_o it_o which_o have_v be_v prove_v very_o often_o to_o have_v be_v in_o our_o case_n and_o also_o that_o by_o a_o insufficient_a testimony_n the_o will_n of_o a_o superior_a can_v by_v any_o mean_n appear_v and_o thus_o much_o in_o defence_n of_o m._n champneys_n definition_n of_o disobedience_n with_o which_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n be_v charge_v the_o author_n of_o the_o apology_n be_v as_o it_o shall_v seem_v drive_v to_o a_o desperate_a point_n begin_v to_o advise_v the_o priest_n in_o this_o manner_n well_o then_o all_o this_o be_v presuppose_v a_o hot_a piece_n of_o service_n and_o all_o heat_n of_o partiality_n and_o passion_n lay_v aside_o we_o will_v ask_v our_o brethren_n in_o their_o conscience_n before_o god_n and_o as_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n they_o will_v and_o must_v answer_v true_o and_o sincere_o when_o they_o have_v see_v and_o read_v over_o car._n caietans_n letter_n patent_n wherein_o under_o his_o hand_n and_o seal_v he_o testify_v to_o they_o and_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o division_n and_o dissension_n raise_v in_o england_n between_o priest_n and_o jesuit_n i_o pray_v you_o bid_v the_o jesuite_n welcome_v into_o the_o list_n although_o they_o seem_v to_o have_v steal_v in_o here_o at_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o fray_n or_o priest_n and_o priest_n upon_o that_o or_o other_o cause_n and_o for_o continuation_n of_o discipline_n union_n and_o concord_n his_o hol._n have_v resolve_v to_o make_v a_o subordination_n and_o have_v by_o a_o special_a commandment_n enjoin_v the_o same_o to_o he_o to_o be_v perform_v by_o his_o letter_n and_o know_v further_o that_o his_o hol._n not_o many_o month_n before_o which_o the_o card._n repeat_v in_o his_o letter_n have_v tell_v the_o very_a same_o tale_n unto_o diverse_a of_o they_o at_o their_o departure_n from_o rome_n about_o these_o division_n exhort_v and_o charge_v they_o most_o straight_o to_o have_v union_n and_o peace_n with_o all_o &_o namely_o with_o the_o father_n of_o the_o society_n make_v the_o very_a like_o exhortation_n to_o they_o which_o now_o the_o cardinal_n do_v all_o these_o thing_n we_o say_v concur_v and_o many_o other_o as_o well_o letter_n from_o rome_n as_o man_n that_o come_v from_o thence_o testify_v this_o act_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o very_a probability_n and_o moral_a evidence_n itself_o be_v so_o clear_a that_o no_o card_n will_v ever_o dare_v presume_v to_o do_v or_o attempt_v so_o public_a a_o act_n under_o letter_n patent_n and_o that_o express_o in_o the_o pope_n name_n without_o sure_a commission_n here_o we_o say_v let_v our_o brethren_n tell_v we_o sincere_o and_o without_o passion_n be_v this_o moral_a certainty_n of_o the_o pope_n will_n or_o not_o or_o be_v this_o sufficient_a knowledge_n to_o bind_v under_o sin_n to_o obedience_n or_o no_o be_v a_o card._n protector_n letter_n patent_n testify_v his_o hol._n commandment_n therein_o enough_o to_o the_o condition_n require_v by_o s._n tho._n ut_fw-la superiorum_fw-la voluntas_fw-la quocunque_fw-la modo_fw-la innotescat_fw-la that_o our_o superior_n will_v do_v any_o way_n appear_v but_o we_o will_v not_o urge_v
be_v write_v the_o sixth_o of_o july_n 1597._o but_o what_o do_v or_o can_v this_o concern_v the_o priest_n come_v to_o his_o holiness_n towards_o the_o late_a end_n of_o the_o year_n 1598._o to_o deal_v about_o a_o matter_n which_o be_v not_o before_o the_o 7_o of_o march_n in_o the_o same_o year_n 1598._o as_o appear_v by_o the_o date_n of_o the_o cardinal_n letter_n apology_n ca._n 8._o fol._n 104_o there_o be_v also_o a_o piece_n of_o another_o letter_n of_o the_o same_o man_n to_o to_o the_o cardinal_n protector_n of_o the_o first_o of_o may_v 1598._o which_o although_o it_o be_v write_v after_o that_o the_o subordination_n be_v institute_v yet_o it_o be_v write_v before_o that_o it_o be_v know_v in_o england_n for_o to_o our_o remembrance_n we_o have_v no_o knowledge_n thereof_o until_o it_o be_v may_v here_o with_o us._n but_o howsoever_o this_o be_v it_o be_v impossible_a that_o it_o can_v concern_v the_o two_o priest_n their_o come_n to_o his_o holiness_n for_o this_o be_v not_o so_o sudden_o determine_v in_o england_n although_o upon_o the_o first_o sight_n of_o the_o cardinal_n letter_n the_o archpriest_n be_v tell_v that_o there_o be_v just_a cause_n for_o they_o to_o go_v to_o his_o holiness_n by_o this_o than_o it_o appear_v that_o d._n stapletons_n letter_n which_o be_v to_o fa._n parson_n and_o to_o the_o protector_n can_v not_o induce_v his_o holiness_n to_o imprison_v the_o two_o priest_n who_o come_v to_o deal_v about_o the_o subordination_n let_v we_o now_o see_v what_o the_o second_o testimony_n avail_v he_o this_o testimony_n be_v of_o principal_a man_n who_o write_v some_o month_n say_v this_o author_n fol._n 124._o before_o these_o two_o messenger_n come_v over_o into_o flanders_n he_o say_v france_n 120._o but_o their_o negotiation_n in_o england_n be_v hear_v of_o and_o know_v and_o these_o principal_a man_n of_o who_o the_o most_o principal_a stand_v for_o the_o priest_n and_o be_v join_v with_o they_o in_o affection_n and_o action_n in_o rome_n at_o this_o present_a write_v their_o letter_n to_o the_o general_a of_o the_o jesuite_n upon_o this_o voice_n which_o they_o hear_v when_o you_o do_v justice_n you_o shall_v make_v also_o peace_n a_o heavy_a say_n for_o such_o as_o will_v be_v prove_v to_o have_v do_v as_o great_a a_o injury_n as_o may_v be_v by_o a_o public_a diffamation_n of_o schism_n and_o what_o not_o against_o catholic_a priest_n without_o just_a cause_n but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o purpose_n how_o be_v his_o holiness_n upon_o this_o letter_n resolve_v to_o imprison_v the_o two_o priest_n who_o be_v in_o the_o way_n to_o he_o for_o and_o concern_v the_o subordination_n which_o be_v make_v the_o general_n perchance_o of_o the_o jesuit_n do_v show_v this_o letter_n to_o his_o holiness_n and_o thereby_o the_o negotiation_n of_o these_o two_o and_o their_o fellow_n come_v also_o to_o be_v know_v to_o his_o holiness_n all_o this_o go_v very_a currant_n but_o what_o if_o those_o man_n now_o become_v principal_a neither_o hear_v of_o these_o 2._o priest_n as_o dealer_n in_o this_o action_n nor_o of_o any_o other_o not_o only_o not_o in_o particular_a but_o neither_o in_o general_n what_o if_o they_o can_v not_o possible_o hear_v that_o there_o be_v any_o subordination_n know_v in_o england_n and_o much_o less_o that_o any_o do_v delay_n to_o admit_v thereof_o when_o they_o write_v this_o letter_n to_o the_o general_n of_o the_o jesuit_n how_o shameless_a will_v this_o author_n be_v judge_v who_o will_v bring_v these_o principal_a man_n their_o letter_n as_o a_o motive_n to_o his_o holiness_n to_o imprison_v these_o two_o priest_n before_o he_o will_v hear_v what_o they_o have_v to_o say_v this_o subordination_n be_v make_v at_o rome_n the_o seven_o of_o march_n in_o the_o year_n 1598._o and_o if_o the_o messenger_n have_v stride_v a_o black_a horse_n to_o bring_v it_o into_o england_n yet_o can_v there_o not_o be_v any_o negotiation_n in_o england_n convenient_o either_o by_o these_o two_o priest_n or_o other_o concern_v the_o same_o in_o so_o short_a a_o time_n as_o that_o these_o 17_o principal_a man_n unless_o they_o be_v altogether_o attend_v as_o it_o be_v to_o have_v entertain_v the_o same_o messenger_n in_o flanders_n consider_v mature_o of_o the_o negotiation_n which_o be_v in_o england_n can_v burnish_v up_o a_o letter_n and_o dispatch_v it_o upon_o the_o eighteen_o of_o march_n in_o the_o same_o year_n 1598._o as_o here_o be_v cite_v in_o the_o margin_n fol._n 123._o now_o follow_v the_o letter_n of_o diverse_a zealous_a man_n when_o as_o this_o author_n say_v these_o messenger_n be_v in_o their_o way_n indeed_o for_o the_o other_o be_v write_v especial_o those_o of_o the_o 17._o principal_a man_n when_o the_o priest_n be_v in_o their_o negotiation_n before_o they_o set_v forward_o as_o it_o be_v say_v fol._n 124._o &_o these_o man_n write_v indeed_o very_o sharp_o and_o with_o such_o confidence_n as_o they_o may_v give_v some_o suspicion_n to_o a_o wise_a man_n that_o all_o be_v not_o well_o in_o england_n but_o yet_o there_o be_v no_o persuasion_n to_o have_v the_o messenger_n cast_v into_o prison_n until_o they_o be_v hear_v a_o duty_n which_o they_o may_v challenge_v if_o in_o no_o other_o respect_n yet_o at_o least_o for_o their_o travail_n in_o god_n church_n for_o which_o they_o deserve_v a_o good_a opinion_n of_o the_o governor_n thereof_o the_o first_o here_o cite_v be_v from_o douai_n 25._o octob._n 1598._o to_o the_o protector_n to_o which_o some_o have_v acknowledge_v their_o error_n in_o subscribe_v these_o letter_n do_v not_o clear_a fa._n parson_n for_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o holiness_n resolution_n to_o imprison_v the_o two_o priest_n for_o in_o this_o apology_n it_o be_v confess_v fol._n 120_o that_o his_o holiness_n be_v resolve_v upon_o the_o 17._o of_o october_n 1398._o to_o cast_v they_o into_o prison_n for_o such_o date_n do_v the_o letter_n bear_v which_o f._n bellarmine_n now_o cardinal_n be_v say_v to_o have_v write_v to_o fa._n parson_n to_o inform_v he_o that_o his_o holiness_n so_o great_o mislike_v their_o troublesome_a fact_n that_o he_o have_v tell_v he_o that_o if_o they_o come_v to_o ferrara_n he_o will_v cause_v they_o to_o be_v imprison_v if_o these_o then_o of_o the_o 25._o of_o octob._n come_v too_o late_o to_o put_v such_o a_o resolution_n into_o his_o holiness_n head_n what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o these_o which_o come_v after_o for_o the_o next_o letter_n be_v from_o m._n d._n worthington_n to_o the_o protector_n and_o these_o bear_v date_n the_o 30._o of_o october_n from_o brussels_n next_o march_v d._n peerse_n who_o be_v the_o first_o in_o the_o rank_n of_o the_o 17._o principal_a man_n but_o now_o god_n know_v what_o place_n he_o shall_v have_v and_o among_o who_o for_o that_o he_o be_v join_v with_o the_o priest_n in_o rome_n and_o in_o that_o action_n d._n caesar_n clement_n that_o succeed_v d._n stapleton_n in_o the_o office_n of_o assistanceship_n to_o the_o nuntius_n in_o flanders_n in_o all_o english_a affair_n a_o man_n that_o be_v never_o in_o england_n but_o to_o give_v he_o his_o right_n the_o fit_a man_n for_o that_o purpose_n as_o matter_n go_v and_o worthy_a to_o succeed_v d._n stapleton_n or_o any_o far_o great_a man_n than_o he_o in_o that_o kind_n of_o manage_v english_a affair_n d._n richard_n hall_n three_o doctor_n but_o what_o these_o or_o other_o write_v most_o earnest_o and_o grave_o to_o the_o same_o effect_n as_o the_o other_o do_v by_o all_o likelihood_n this_o author_n know_v not_o for_o as_o he_o say_v he_o have_v not_o the_o copy_n of_o their_o letter_n when_o he_o write_v this_o apology_n but_o he_o meet_v with_o a_o letter_n of_o m._n licentiat_fw-la wright_n deane_z of_o cortrac_n in_o flanders_n to_o the_o protector_n which_o be_v here_o set_v down_o in_o the_o apology_n wherein_o this_o deane_z have_v little_a cause_n to_o thank_v this_o author_n who_o will_v discredit_v he_o so_o much_o as_o to_o set_v down_o his_o judgement_n of_o two_o priest_n who_o he_o never_o see_v and_o although_o his_o letter_n do_v exceed_v the_o limit_n of_o all_o modesty_n yet_o do_v it_o not_o any_o whit_n avail_v this_o author_n for_o proof_n of_o that_o for_o which_o it_o be_v bring_v that_o be_v that_o his_o holiness_n be_v thereupon_o resolve_v to_o imprison_v the_o two_o priest_n for_o this_o letter_n bear_v date_n 10._o novembris_fw-la 1598._o as_o appear_v here_o fol._n 126_o which_o be_v a_o fair_a while_n after_o his_o holiness_n have_v that_o resolution_n as_o appear_v by_o f._n bellarmine_n now_o card._n his_o letter_n of_o the_o 17._o of_o octob._n 1598._o cite_v by_o this_o author_n fol._n 120._o yet_o go_v this_o fellow_n on_o very_o smooth_o and_o not_o without_o great_a applause_n of_o the_o
blind_a obedient_a in_o this_o manner_n by_o this_o then_o say_v he_o and_o other_o letter_n that_o come_v to_o his_o holiness_n as_o you_o must_v suppose_v or_o to_o the_o protector_n he_o shall_v have_v add_v or_o to_o the_o general_a of_o the_o jesuit_n or_o to_o fa._n parson_n for_o all_o these_o here_o relate_v be_v to_o some_o of_o these_o and_o not_o one_o to_o his_o holiness_n nor_o all_o to_o the_o protector_n nor_o about_o these_o matter_n as_o in_o their_o place_n it_o be_v confess_v in_o the_o apology_n about_o this_o time_n and_o be_v relate_v to_o his_o holiness_n by_o he_o his_o holiness_n be_v all_o this_o while_n at_o ferrara_n and_o the_o cardinal_n at_o rome_n or_o at_o some_o place_n of_o recreation_n in_o those_o part_n every_o man_n may_v see_v whether_o he_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o be_v move_v or_o no_o and_o to_o resolve_v to_o restrain_v they_o at_o their_o arrival_n you_o must_v understand_v at_o ferrara_n from_o whence_o fa_o bellarmine_n now_o card._n be_v say_v fol._n 120._o to_o have_v certify_v fa._n parson_n by_o his_o letter_n of_o the_o 17._o of_o october_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v tell_v he_o that_o if_o they_o come_v to_o ferrara_n he_o will_v cause_v they_o to_o be_v imprison_v but_o much_o more_o when_o after_o 17._o or_o 18._o day_n stay_v in_o rome_n as_o before_o have_v be_v say_v they_o can_v not_o be_v induce_v by_o the_o protector_n persuasion_n to_o any_o quiet_a course_n at_o all_o that_o which_o be_v before_o say_v be_v say_v fol._n 121._o which_o must_v be_v one_o day_n unsay_v for_o there_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o card._n caietan_n and_o burgesius_n say_v and_o do_v many_o thing_n to_o the_o priest_n which_o be_v most_o false_o relate_v for_o the_o cardinal_n burgesius_n entertain_v they_o very_o friendly_a and_o be_v certify_v upon_o his_o earnest_a request_n set_v on_o by_o fa._n parson_n to_o know_v it_o at_o that_o time_n what_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o come_n to_o rome_n he_o promise_v they_o according_a to_o their_o request_n to_o procure_v they_o audience_n before_o they_o shall_v be_v judge_v which_o they_o do_v the_o more_o earnest_o request_n for_o that_o they_o have_v understand_v by_o fa._n parson_n who_o be_v then_o immediate_o depart_v from_o the_o cardinal_n but_o be_v before_o certify_v that_o the_o two_o priest_n attend_v his_o departure_n that_o his_o holiness_n be_v incense_v against_o they_o &_o nothing_o else_o pass_v between_o the_o card._n burgesius_n and_o they_o at_o that_o time_n and_o after_o this_o they_o go_v to_o the_o card._n caietan_n so_o soon_o as_o they_o can_v after_o that_o they_o understand_v of_o his_o return_n to_o the_o city_n and_o he_o be_v also_o very_o importunate_a to_o know_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o come_n to_o rome_n which_o when_o they_o discover_v he_o seem_v to_o be_v much_o trouble_v especial_o when_o they_o talk_v of_o the_o subordination_n as_o his_o fact_n yet_o conclude_v thus_o with_o they_o that_o they_o shall_v bring_v in_o write_v what_o they_o have_v to_o say_v concern_v the_o subordination_n &_o the_o appurtenance_n to_o which_o they_o accord_v offer_v to_o have_v the_o matter_n as_o belong_v proper_o to_o he_o order_v by_o he_o if_o so_o it_o can_v be_v without_o trouble_v his_o holiness_n therewith_o and_o request_v his_o furtherance_n in_o such_o other_o matter_n as_o be_v only_o in_o his_o holiness_n to_o grant_v and_o thus_o they_o depart_v with_o resolution_n to_o return_v to_o the_o card._n with_o their_o difficulty_n in_o writing_n and_o agree_v with_o one_o who_o shall_v have_v write_v for_o they_o the_o copy_n which_o they_o be_v to_o present_v to_o the_o card._n but_o they_o be_v intercept_v by_o the_o jesuit_n and_o sbirri_n of_o which_o f._n parson_n be_v the_o chief_a leader_n and_o this_o be_v all_o which_o pass_v between_o the_o card._n caietan_n and_o they_o as_o the_o card._n well_o know_v and_o this_o be_v upon_o the_o feast_n day_n of_o s._n thomas_n the_o apostle_n when_o the_o water_n have_v begin_v to_o rise_v in_o tiber_n which_o overflow_v the_o city_n and_o upon_o s._n thomas_n of_o canterbury_n his_o day_n about_o the_o first_o or_o second_o hour_n in_o the_o night_n the_o two_o priest_n be_v carry_v away_o to_o prison_n perchance_o for_o the_o solemnize_n of_o that_o feast_n in_o some_o reform_a godly_a manner_n this_o author_n have_v show_v to_o such_o as_o must_v not_o see_v how_o that_o the_o pope_n resolve_v to_o imprison_v the_o two_o priest_n upon_o the_o letter_n here_o cite_v now_o he_o will_v peswade_v such_o as_o must_v believe_v that_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o fa._n parson_n can_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o imprisonment_n it_o may_v be_v see_v also_o say_v he_o how_o unjust_o they_o do_v calumniate_v and_o accuse_v fa._n parson_n as_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o their_o trouble_n consider_v those_o letter_n be_v write_v from_o flanders_n upon_o the_o two_o messenger_n first_o come_v over_o so_o as_o fa_o parson_n have_v neither_o time_n to_o procure_v those_o letter_n from_o flanders_n neither_o be_v it_o likely_a that_o man_n so_o grave_a learned_a and_o wise_a as_o these_o be_v will_v be_v induce_v by_o another_o man_n request_n to_o write_v such_o letter_n under_o their_o own_o hand_n to_o so_o great_a personage_n the_o protector_n the_o general_n of_o the_o jesuite_n and_o fa._n parson_n and_o that_o in_o so_o important_a a_o matter_n except_o they_o have_v think_v as_o they_o write_v and_o their_o judgement_n have_v be_v conform_a to_o their_o letter_n and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o first_o point_n about_o their_o imprisonment_n be_v not_o these_o effectual_a persuasion_n that_o f._n parson_n can_v not_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o trouble_n suppose_v all_o these_o letter_n have_v be_v write_v upon_o the_o first_o come_v over_o of_o the_o two_o priest_n as_o they_o be_v not_o nor_o the_o soon_a of_o they_o which_o concern_v the_o two_o priest_n in_o almost_o two_o month_n after_o let_v we_o also_o suppose_v that_o his_o holiness_n be_v induce_v to_o resolve_v upon_o the_o imprison_a these_o two_o priest_n by_o these_o letter_n which_o we_o have_v show_v can_v not_o be_v the_o soon_a of_o they_o be_v write_v upon_o the_o 25._o of_o october_n 1598._o as_o be_v confess_v in_o the_o apology_n fol._n 125._o and_o his_o holiness_n resolve_v upon_o the_o 17._o of_o the_o same_o month_n before_o to_o imprison_v they_o at_o ferrara_n as_o be_v confess_v also_o in_o the_o apology_n fol._n 120_o it_o be_v so_o long_o before_o their_o go_n and_o it_o be_v so_o well_o know_v that_o some_o be_v to_o go_v as_o one_o of_o the_o now_o busy_a agent_n tell_v one_o of_o they_o for_o certain_a that_o whosoever_o go_v in_o that_o affair_n shall_v at_o their_o arrival_n be_v cast_v into_o prison_n and_o although_o these_o flanders_n man_n who_o write_v be_v so_o persuade_v in_o conscience_n to_o write_v as_o they_o do_v and_o do_v therefore_o write_v because_o they_o be_v so_o persuade_v this_o be_v no_o proof_n that_o they_o be_v not_o induce_v by_o other_o to_o have_v such_o a_o conscience_n to_o think_v or_o to_o write_v in_o that_o manner_n and_o some_o of_o they_o have_v acknowledge_v and_o have_v be_v and_o be_v very_o sorry_a that_o they_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v induce_v by_o d._n barret_n to_o subscribe_v unto_o that_o letter_n from_o douai_n so_o that_o this_o be_v a_o poor_a devise_n and_o a_o silly_a persuasion_n that_o fa._n parson_n can_v not_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o two_o priest_n their_o trouble_n who_o be_v know_v to_o have_v his_o agent_n in_o all_o these_o part_n if_o himself_o be_v ashamed_a to_o have_v his_o letter_n to_o be_v see_v for_o any_o such_o matter_n and_o it_o not_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o any_o of_o these_o letter_n of_o flanders_n that_o any_o of_o these_o great_a personage_n the_o cardinal_n the_o general_n of_o the_o jesuite_n and_o fa._n parson_n to_o who_o these_o letter_n be_v send_v be_v persuade_v by_o they_o that_o these_o two_o priest_n be_v to_o be_v imprison_v before_o they_o be_v hear_v the_o author_n leave_v the_o wound_n in_o fa_fw-it parson_n side_n as_o wide_o as_o it_o be_v before_o unless_o to_o heal_v up_o that_o he_o will_v wound_v his_o holiness_n much_o deep_a as_o who_o be_v repute_v for_o a_o most_o mild_a and_o wise_a man_n shall_v resolve_v upon_o the_o imprisonment_n of_o a_o couple_n of_o catholic_a priest_n come_v as_o it_o be_v bleed_v from_o the_o camp_n of_o god_n church_n to_o open_v unto_o he_o such_o difficulty_n as_o be_v to_o be_v redress_v either_o concern_v their_o whole_a church_n or_o some_o member_n thereof_o who_o have_v late_o challenge_v unto_o they_o a_o extraordinary_a superiority_n over_o their_o fellow_n labourer_n without_o
against_o our_o brethren_n priest_n that_o have_v be_v of_o the_o same_o college_n and_o university_n here_o in_o rome_n and_o have_v go_v hence_o into_o england_n joint_o to_o labour_n and_o adventure_v our_o life_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n though_o before_o they_o and_o be_v quick_o weary_a thereof_o yet_o their_o manner_n of_o proceed_v have_v be_v and_o be_v so_o prejudicial_a to_o common_a peace_n these_o good_a proctor_n be_v 12_o year_n before_o or_o there_o about_o go_v out_o of_o england_n and_o union_n and_o so_o scandalous_a to_o all_o good_a and_o honest_a man_n that_o either_o we_o must_v oppose_v ourselves_o against_o they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o head_n they_o mean_v the_o archpriest_n who_o be_v not_o their_o head_n they_o live_v at_o rome_n and_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o our_o catholic_a body_n in_o england_n and_o abroad_o they_o will_v make_v their_o foresay_a head_n a_o young_a pope_n or_o else_o we_o shall_v seem_v to_o betray_v the_o same_o cause_n impugn_a by_o they_o o_o scrupulous_a conscience_n who_o will_v think_v that_o all_o his_o tale_n be_v only_o a_o imagination_n what_o may_v have_v be_v say_v neither_o he_o nor_o his_o fellow_n proctor_n have_v as_o yet_o utter_v one_o word_n but_o let_v we_o hear_v this_o saint_n make_v a_o end_n of_o this_o lewd_a and_o loud_a lie_n wherefore_o we_o pray_v their_o grace_n in_o what_o language_n not_o to_o be_v scandalize_v to_o see_v this_o division_n among_o we_o for_o that_o these_o be_v the_o moth_n o_o gentle_a mouth_n speak_v that_o do_v breed_v in_o the_o best_a clothes_n and_o the_o worm_n o_o noble_a proctor_n that_o be_v common_o find_v under_o the_o bark_n of_o every_o tree_n if_o they_o be_v not_o look_v to_o in_o time_n and_o that_o this_o happen_v also_o in_o the_o very_a primitive_a church_n permit_v by_o god_n for_o the_o better_a proof_n and_o exercise_n of_o good_a man_n and_o that_o this_o be_v a_o very_a heresy_n in_o manner_n &_o action_n as_o the_o other_o in_o protestant_n be_v in_o faith_n and_o religion_n &_o that_o this_o will_v break_v into_o that_o in_o time_n if_o that_o it_o be_v not_o look_v into_o as_o in_o diverse_a of_o the_o jesuit_n darling_n it_o have_v do_v already_o and_o must_v needs_o do_v for_o that_o it_o be_v contention_n found_v upon_o the_o same_o ground_n of_o emulation_n every_o ambition_n hatred_n covetousness_n and_o liberty_n of_o life_n as_o the_o other_o heresy_n be_v and_o wrought_v a_o spirit_n conform_v to_o that_o in_o all_o respect_n etc._n etc._n this_o letter_n be_v write_v 3._o or_o 4._o day_n after_o that_o the_o priest_n have_v appear_v before_o the_o cardinal_n and_o after_o a_o friendly_a composition_n demand_v by_o the_o proctor_n and_o pretend_v by_o the_o cardinal_n can_v it_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o any_o other_o thing_n than_o a_o desire_n to_o continue_v strife_n and_o division_n can_v the_o most_o hateful_a profess_a enemy_n in_o the_o world_n have_v disgorge_v his_o filthy_a stomach_n in_o more_o spiteful_a term_n have_v this_o be_v utter_v by_o the_o proctor_n before_o the_o cardinal_n against_o the_o two_o priest_n with_o shame_n enough_o it_o have_v be_v write_v into_o england_n but_o without_o the_o least_o ●ot_n of_o honesty_n the_o proctor_n themselves_o have_v most_o humble_o desire_v a_o friendly_a composition_n but_o the_o proctor_n not_o have_v utter_v one_o word_n much_o less_o in_o these_o most_o vile_a term_n who_o may_v not_o just_o judge_v that_o when_o this_o letter_n be_v write_v which_o be_v after_o the_o appearance_n of_o the_o two_o priest_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o date_n that_o it_o be_v not_o mean_v by_o that_o side_n that_o ever_o there_o shall_v be_v peace_n but_o mark_v i_o pray_v you_o yet_o a_o most_o wicked_a relation_n and_o which_o may_v convince_v more_o evident_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o these_o fellow_n will_v not_o have_v peace_n and_o then_o say_v he_o we_o give_v up_o a_o writing_n which_o before_o have_v be_v exhibit_v unto_o his_o holiness_n &_o be_v remit_v hither_o as_o it_o seem_v it_o seem_v so_o indeed_o for_o d_o haddock_n have_v it_o ready_a to_o give_v up_o to_o the_o cardinal_n so_o soon_o as_o f._n parson_n have_v tell_v his_o tale_n that_o these_o man_n come_v hither_o only_o to_o trouble_v the_o peace_n of_o england_n and_o to_o revive_v stir_n in_o rome_n and_o that_o of_o their_o own_o head_n as_o it_o seem_v for_o that_o they_o have_v bring_v no_o one_o letter_n of_o credence_n with_o they_o of_o superior_a or_o other_o to_o his_o holiness_n protector_n or_o other_o man_n in_o rome_n etc._n etc._n wherefore_o we_o desire_v remedy_n in_o this_o behalf_n and_o exhibit_v diverse_a letter_n of_o the_o doctor_n of_o douai_n and_o m._n wright_n the_o deane_z of_o cortrac_n and_o of_o other_o grave_a man_n of_o our_o nation_n to_o this_o effect_n all_o these_o letter_n here_o say_v to_o have_v be_v exhibit_v by_o the_o proctor_n be_v no_o other_o than_o one_o letter_n from_o the_o d_o of_o douai_n and_o a_o other_o from_o m._n wright_n which_o be_v set_v in_o the_o apology_n fol._n 125_o 126._o whereof_o the_o first_o bear_v date_n the_o 25._o of_o octob._n 1598._o and_o the_o second_o 10_o novemb._n 1598._o and_o they_o be_v both_o to_o the_o protector_n yet_o must_v m._n martin_n friend_n believe_v that_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n protector_n do_v upon_o the_o 17._o of_o february_n exhibit_v many_o other_o letter_n to_o the_o protector_n who_o be_v chief_a judge_n notwithstanding_o the_o exception_n take_v against_o he_o at_o this_o time_n but_o how_o be_v these_o letter_n exhibit_v in_o no_o other_o sort_n then_o as_o a_o part_n of_o that_o writing_n for_o they_o be_v insert_v in_o it_o as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o writing_n itself_o of_o which_o i_o have_v see_v a_o copy_n but_o let_v this_o pass_v let_v we_o hear_v what_o he_o say_v be_v answer_v by_o the_o priest_n to_o all_o these_o grievous_a accusation_n against_o all_o which_o say_v he_o the_o ambassador_n be_v able_a to_o say_v little_a and_o willing_a to_o say_v less_o but_o only_o excuse_v their_o own_o intention_n and_o ask_v pardon_v if_o they_o have_v give_v scandal_n by_o their_o manner_n of_o proceed_v more_o than_o they_o ever_o mean_v but_o put_v the_o case_n indeed_o as_o it_o be_v and_o as_o the_o card._n burgesius_n without_o doubt_n will_v acknowledge_v and_o the_o jesuit_n with_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o faction_n then_o present_a must_v avouch_v it_o one_o day_n against_o their_o own_o soul_n will_v they_o will_v they_o that_o fa._n tichborne_n the_o jesuit_n who_o here_o also_o supply_v the_o place_n of_o a_o public_a notary_n and_o read_v this_o libel_n have_v no_o soon_o do_v read_v it_o then_o m._n bishop_n require_v that_o the_o proctor_n may_v take_v their_o oath_n that_o the_o libel_n contain_v nothing_o but_o truth_n to_o which_o when_o the_o card._n caietan_n will_v not_o consent_v he_o request_v that_o a_o copy_n of_o the_o libel_n may_v be_v deliver_v unto_o he_o &_o his_o fellow_n that_o they_o may_v make_v their_o answer_n unto_o it_o as_o most_o false_a and_o injurious_a whereat_o d._n have_v who_o have_v give_v up_o the_o writing_n step_v to_o the_o table_n &_o request_v that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v deliver_v unto_o they_o but_o that_o all_o thing_n rather_o shall_v be_v peaceable_o conclude_v to_o which_o the_o card._n caietan_n present_o consent_v the_o soon_o perchance_o for_o joy_n that_o both_o the_o proctor_n be_v not_o dumb_a for_o before_o this_o act_n of_o d._n haddock_n it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o neither_o of_o they_o speak_v one_o word_n howsoever_o that_o his_o fellow_n vaunt_v of_o his_o workmanship_n when_o he_o be_v bid_v to_o speak_v like_o a_o proctor_n now_o will_v i_o ask_v of_o a_o indifferent_a judge_n whether_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o there_o can_v be_v any_o desire_n of_o peace_n in_o fellow_n who_o in_o cold_a blood_n and_o after_o three_o night_n rest_n if_o rancour_n and_o malice_n will_v suffer_v they_o to_o rest_n will_v write_v thus_o into_o england_n clean_o contrary_a to_o all_o truth_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o such_o moment_n as_o be_v the_o handle_n of_o the_o cause_n concern_v which_o all_o the_o division_n be_v which_o be_v or_o be_v like_a to_o be_v in_o england_n and_o if_o this_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v do_v lest_o that_o they_o shall_v seem_v to_o betray_v the_o cause_n impugn_a by_o the_o two_o priest_n as_o this_o fellow_n say_v in_o this_o letter_n must_v not_o consequent_o this_o cause_n be_v a_o most_o foul_a cause_n which_o must_v be_v uphold_v with_o such_o shameless_a falsehood_n can_v these_o fellow_n think_v that_o master_n bishop_n or_o master_n charnocke_v shall_v ever_o come_v to_o
to_o keep_v he_o in_o case_n for_o ever_o come_v home_o and_o to_o aggravat_fw-la the_o matter_n m._n charnocke_n be_v say_v to_o have_v make_v a_o ridiculous_a appeal_n from_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o two_o cardinal_n but_o i_o think_v that_o this_o fellow_n worship_n do_v not_o laugh_v when_o he_o hear_v of_o it_o yea_o and_o more_o than_o this_o he_o come_v to_o paris_n and_o take_v degree_n of_o bachelor_n of_o divinity_n which_o perchance_o trouble_v this_o fellow_n worship_n as_o much_o as_o the_o appeal_n and_o thereupon_o he_o do_v so_o juggle_v it_o with_o m._n bishop_n his_o take_a degree_n of_o doctor_n forbid_v as_o he_o say_v by_o a_o express_a breve_fw-la that_o his_o reader_n may_v think_v m._n charnocke_n have_v commit_v some_o great_a offence_n and_o yet_o this_o author_n mean_v nothing_o less_o but_o that_o he_o lay_v all_o the_o offence_n upon_o doctor_n bishop_n who_o be_v before_o and_o not_o at_o that_o time_n make_v doctor_n as_o he_o will_v seem_v to_o say_v and_o be_v lawful_o make_v and_o worthy_o and_o no_o way_n contrary_a to_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o breve_fw-la which_o be_v get_v of_o the_o pope_n not_o against_o the_o doctor_n without_o approbation_n as_o here_o be_v most_o false_o note_v in_o the_o margin_n but_o against_o the_o doctor_n of_o young_a man_n and_o such_o by_o explication_n of_o those_o who_o procure_v the_o breve_fw-la as_o will_v take_v the_o degree_n more_o timely_a than_o the_o ambition_n of_o their_o adversary_n can_v well_o like_a of_o but_o to_o return_v to_o his_o tale_n of_o m._n charnocke_n here_o then_o that_o be_v at_o paris_n it_o be_v resolve_v say_v he_o that_o m._n charnocke_v notwithstanding_o his_o holiness_n prohibition_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o two_o cardinal_n caietane_n and_o burghese_n from_o which_o he_o have_v lawful_o appeal_v which_o also_o m._n doctor_n ely_n confirm_v in_o his_o note_n upon_o the_o apology_n pag_n 157._o and_o thereby_o set_v himself_o free_a until_o the_o matter_n be_v again_o discuss_v and_o his_o own_o oath_n to_o the_o contrary_n which_o he_o never_o take_v nor_o be_v any_o offer_v he_o when_o the_o sentence_n here_o specify_v fol._n 155_o be_v show_v he_o by_o fa._n parson_n in_o form_n of_o a_o letter_n to_o the_o same_o father_n be_v then_o rector_n or_o the_o vice_n rector_n of_o the_o college_n shall_v go_v into_o england_n under_o pretence_n of_o lack_n of_o mean_n to_o live_v abroad_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o appeal_v in_o lorraine_n before_o he_o come_v to_o paris_n as_o m._n archpr._n understand_v by_o a_o letter_n from_o m._n artur_fw-la pitts_n the_o dean_n of_o le_fw-fr verdun_n and_o chancellor_n of_o the_o legation_n in_o lorraine_n and_o that_o only_a for_o fashion_n sake_n he_o shall_v advise_v cardinal_n burghesius_n thereof_o which_o he_o do_v by_o a_o little_a short_a contemptious_a letter_n of_o the_o 25._o of_o may._n the_o letter_n be_v write_v in_o very_o humble_a manner_n as_o i_o understand_v by_o those_o that_o see_v it_o and_o with_o the_o privity_n of_o other_o in_o paris_n who_o will_v soon_o have_v cause_v any_o such_o stile_n to_o have_v be_v alter_v and_o as_o it_o be_v not_o perchance_o very_o long_o so_o as_o it_o appea_v by_o the_o author_n relation_n it_o be_v not_o very_o short_a for_o here_o he_o say_v that_o the_o cardinal_n do_v answer_v all_o the_o objection_n or_o cavillation_n touch_v therein_o about_o their_o hard_a usage_n &_o injurious_a sentence_n give_v against_o they_o and_o how_o he_o have_v appeal_v which_o this_o author_n call_v point_n of_o the_o letter_n nor_o in_o any_o such_o manner_n contemptible_a for_o who_o can_v think_v that_o this_o fellow_n be_v so_o modest_a that_o among_o all_o his_o contemptuous_a term_n and_o narrow_a seek_v for_o the_o least_o matter_n to_o bring_v the_o priest_n into_o contempt_n he_o will_v not_o set_v down_o some_o one_o phrase_n or_o other_o by_o which_o it_o shall_v appear_v to_o his_o reader_n that_o the_o letter_n be_v a_o contemptuous_a letter_n to_o the_o which_o say_v he_o the_o most_o honourable_a and_o gracious_a good_a cardinal_n answer_v with_o great_a patience_n and_o modesty_n the_o fifteen_o of_o september_n in_o the_o year_n 1600_o begin_v his_o letter_n thus_o reverend_a in_o christ_n as_o my_o brother_n your_o letter_n write_v at_o paris_n the_o 28_o of_o may_n about_o your_o journey_n into_o england_n be_v deliver_v more_o slow_o to_o my_o hand_n then_o i_o can_v have_v wish_v both_o that_o i_o may_v have_v answer_v soon_o and_o have_v dissuade_v that_o journey_n of_o you_o if_o they_o have_v come_v unto_o i_o before_o your_o departure_n out_o of_o france_n for_o that_o i_o think_v the_o news_n of_o your_o departure_n will_v be_v ungrateful_a to_o his_o holiness_n as_o it_o be_v unto_o we_o for_o so_o much_o as_o it_o be_v both_o against_o obedience_n and_o against_o a_o express_a prohibition_n and_o against_o your_o own_o promise_n confirm_v with_o a_o oath_n and_o be_v think_v will_v give_v occasion_n of_o new_a contention_n and_o trouble_n in_o england_n etc._n etc._n thus_o far_o in_o the_o apology_n and_o afterward_o this_o author_n declare_v how_o the_o cardinal_n do_v answer_v the_o objection_n which_o m._n charnocke_n have_v make_v and_o that_o notwithstanding_o this_o m._n charnocke_n do_v not_o only_o persevere_v in_o england_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o his_o function_n of_o priesthood_n have_v open_o incur_v the_o censure_n of_o suspension_n but_o also_o return_v a_o more_o undutiful_a answer_n than_o be_v his_o soon_o letter_n which_o he_o proove_v by_o those_o word_n in_o m._n charnock_v letter_n quam_fw-la licet_fw-la tunc_fw-la cluderem_fw-la fraudem_fw-la ad_fw-la maiorem_fw-la securitatem_fw-la uterque_fw-la ab_fw-la eo_fw-la absolui_fw-la curavimus_fw-la although_o i_o do_v delude_v at_o that_o time_n the_o deceit_n use_v in_o make_v we_o swear_v to_o fulfil_v the_o sentence_n give_v against_o we_o yet_o both_o of_o we_o afterward_o procure_v ourselves_o for_o more_o security_n to_o be_v absolve_v from_o this_o oath_n this_o letter_n of_o the_o cardinal_n burghese_n be_v set_v down_o at_o large_a in_o the_o book_n to_o the_o inquisition_n pag_n 84._o 85._o 86._o and_o 87._o and_o immediate_o do_v m._n charnock_v letter_n follow_v where_o who_o will_n may_v see_v they_o i_o will_v here_o only_o touch_v so_o much_o of_o m._n charnock_v letter_n as_o be_v in_o answer_n to_o that_o part_n of_o the_o cardinal_n here_o cite_v leave_v the_o rest_n to_o man_n of_o judgement_n to_o consider_v whether_o m._n charnocke_n do_v not_o what_o he_o do_v upon_o sufficient_a ground_n to_o save_v himself_o harmless_a from_o all_o censure_n and_o blameless_a in_o the_o opinion_n of_o any_o honest_a man_n thus_o he_o begin_v his_o reply_n which_o this_o author_n tax_v so_o deep_o for_o undutifulnesse_n most_o reverend_a and_o most_o illustrious_a prince_n your_o letter_n date_v at_o rome_n 15._o septemb_n 1600._o i_o do_v receive_v at_o london_n in_o england_n upon_o the_o 21._o of_o the_o next_o month_n follow_v to_o the_o which_o i_o return_v this_o answer_n with_o as_o great_a respect_n as_o the_o law_n be_v in_o which_o they_o be_v write_v i_o do_v not_o well_o understand_v how_o the_o notice_n of_o my_o go_v into_o england_n shall_v be_v ungrateful_a either_o to_o his_o holiness_n or_o unto_o your_o highness_n when_o as_o neither_o a_o most_o love_a father_n nor_o a_o most_o just_a judge_n can_v be_v ignorant_a that_o food_n be_v as_o needful_a for_o the_o live_n as_o punishment_n for_o the_o offendor_n the_o rector_n or_o vicerector_n of_o the_o english_a college_n in_o rome_n be_v appoint_v by_o letter_n of_o the_o most_o illustrious_a cardinal_n caietan_n of_o good_a memory_n and_o of_o your_o highness_n date_v from_o both_o your_o palace_n 21._o of_o april_n 1599_o to_o signify_v unto_o we_o in_o your_o name_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o presume_v for_o a_o time_n to_o go_v without_o leave_n into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n scotland_n or_o ireland_n but_o shall_v live_v quiet_o peaceable_o and_o religious_o in_o other_o catholic_a country_n where_o we_o shall_v be_v appoint_v by_o you_o and_o that_o we_o shall_v procure_v the_o conservation_n of_o peace_n every_o where_n among_o the_o english_a catholic_n if_o either_o of_o they_o have_v signify_v unto_o we_o in_o your_o name_n or_o in_o the_o name_n of_o any_o other_o where_o banish_v and_o confine_v man_n shall_v have_v have_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o sustain_v life_n and_o that_o these_o thing_n have_v be_v at_o hand_n i_o may_v have_v be_v charge_v with_o disobedience_n and_o breach_n of_o a_o express_a commandment_n not_o obey_v so_o pious_a a_o intention_n of_o the_o decree_n which_o lay_v upon_o i_o a_o most_o grievous_a howsoever_o undeserued_a punishment_n as_o
latter_a part_n of_o the_o letter_n be_v leave_v out_o that_o the_o reader_n may_v conceive_v how_o that_o the_o priest_n have_v swear_v to_o observe_v or_o fulfil_v this_o decree_n and_o that_o this_o oath_n be_v exhibit_v by_o the_o immediate_a commissary_n or_o delegate_n of_o his_o holiness_n whereas_o this_o letter_n appear_v not_o in_o many_o day_n after_o that_o m._n acarisius_n the_o commissary_n come_v unto_o the_o college_n upon_o a_o sleeveless_a errand_n as_o by_o this_o decree_n it_o appear_v although_o it_o bear_v a_o date_n of_o the_o day_n before_o m._n acarisius_n come_v thither_o to_o wit_n 21._o april_n and_o m._n acarisius_n come_v not_o until_o the_o 22._o of_o the_o same_o and_o this_o be_v then_o use_v as_o a_o argument_n by_o fa._n parson_n that_o m._n acarisius_n shall_v not_o have_v come_v insomuch_o as_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v somewhat_o amaze_v as_o i_o understand_v when_o he_o show_v this_o letter_n to_o m._n charnocke_n what_o the_o reason_n may_v be_v that_o acarisius_n do_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o declare_v the_o cardinal_n sentence_n see_v the_o cardinal_n have_v commit_v the_o matter_n to_o other_o as_o appear_v by_o those_o letter_n and_o fa._n parson_n be_v ask_v by_o m._n charnocke_n what_o shall_v be_v the_o reason_n that_o these_o letter_n bear_v date_n the_o 21._o of_o april_n be_v not_o see_v in_o so_o many_o day_n after_o answer_v that_o they_o be_v bring_v unto_o the_o college_n the_o 21._o of_o april_n which_o be_v the_o day_n before_o m._n acarisius_n come_v thither_o but_o be_v leave_v in_o his_o chamber_n the_o same_o day_n and_o that_o he_o have_v new_o find_v they_o when_o he_o bring_v they_o to_o m._n charnocke_n m._n bishop_n be_v now_o at_o liberty_n and_o have_v be_v some_o day_n before_o and_o have_v not_o see_v this_o sentence_n of_o the_o two_o cardinal_n neither_o be_v it_o ever_o show_v he_o otherwise_o then_o thus_o come_v one_o day_n to_o see_v f_o parson_n or_o m._n charn_n who_o be_v keep_v still_o as_o yet_o in_o prison_n f._n parson_n tell_v he_o that_o there_o lie_v a_o letter_n upon_o the_o table_n for_o he_o to_o look_v on_o which_o when_o m._n bishop_n have_v read_v he_o lay_v it_o down_o again_o and_o never_o be_v any_o motion_n make_v to_o one_o or_o other_o for_o any_o oath_n for_o the_o fulfil_n of_o this_o sentence_n of_o the_o cardinal_n which_o be_v their_o sentence_n and_o no_o other_o as_o be_v confess_v in_o this_o apology_n fol._n 139._o and_o be_v only_o urge_v in_o this_o place_n to_o have_v be_v transgress_v with_o perjury_n for_o so_o still_o do_v this_o author_n go_v forward_o this_o be_v the_o decree_n say_v he_o and_o it_o be_v strange_a that_o any_o catholic_a priest_n will_v adventure_v to_o break_v it_o so_o open_o and_o to_o glory_n in_o it_o by_o writing_n when_o he_o have_v do_v this_o man_n be_v vile_o trouble_v that_o m._n charnocke_n do_v nothing_o but_o for_o what_o he_o be_v able_a to_o give_v his_o reason_n and_o such_o as_o when_o he_o come_v to_o answer_v he_o let_v all_o slip_n quiet_o yet_o he_o will_v here_o have_v a_o say_n unto_o he_o and_o tell_v his_o reader_n that_o m._n charnocke_n do_v glory_n in_o the_o break_n of_o the_o decree_n which_o be_v most_o false_a for_o neither_o do_v he_o break_v the_o decree_n but_o appeal_v in_o form_n of_o law_n from_o the_o iniquity_n thereof_o nor_o glory_n therein_o but_o prove_v the_o justness_n of_o his_o appeal_n out_o of_o most_o approve_a author_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o his_o answer_n to_o cardinal_n burghese_n set_v in_o the_o book_n to_o the_o inquisition_n pag._n 87._o but_o what_o say_v he_o do_v he_o attend_v to_o observe_v the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o decree_n more_o than_o this_o which_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v live_v quiet_o and_o obedient_o and_o to_o procure_v other_o also_o to_o peace_n and_o concord_n i_o answer_v that_o i_o understand_v by_o such_o as_o live_v in_o lorraine_n that_o he_o live_v very_o quiet_o and_o bring_v with_o he_o a_o testimony_n of_o the_o same_o from_o m._n arthur_n pitts_n to_o who_o he_o be_v so_o much_o behold_v as_o to_o live_v in_o his_o house_n until_o his_o break_n up_o house_n cause_v m._n charnocke_v to_o return_v into_o his_o country_n and_o he_o live_v obedient_o to_o all_o his_o superior_n and_o in_o this_o very_a chapter_n there_o will_v be_v a_o sufficient_a testimony_n gather_v out_o of_o the_o 144_o leaf_n that_o he_o procure_v peace_n and_o concord_n in_o such_o as_o love_a peace_n and_o as_o for_o the_o other_o it_o be_v neither_o in_o his_o power_n to_o procure_v it_o be_v banish_v so_o far_o off_o from_o they_o neither_o can_v any_o man_n in_o wisdom_n ●…e_v he_o unto_o it_o but_o this_o author_n will_v prove_v the_o contrary_a but_o how_o trow_v you_o forsooth_o by_o the_o effect_n that_o ensue_v his_o go_v in_o as_o how_o for_o within_o fourteen_o day_n after_o this_o his_o letter_n to_o the_o cardinal_n there_o follow_v their_o great_a appeal_n from_o the_o archpriest_n a_o great_a matter_n against_o m._n charnocke_n may_v he_o not_o aswell_o have_v say_v that_o it_o be_v about_o a_o month_n after_o that_o cardinal_n burghesius_n letter_n come_v into_o england_n to_o m._n charnocke_n and_o have_v lay_v the_o blame_n if_o appeal_n deserve_v blame_v upon_o the_o cardinal_n if_o any_o man_n will_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o look_v upon_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o appeal_v set_v down_o in_o english_a in_o ma._n colingtons_n book_n pag._n 192._o to_o the_o 202_o page_n he_o shall_v find_v asmuch_o reason_n for_o the_o one_o as_o for_o the_o other_o and_o that_o the_o grievance_n be_v most_o intolerable_a which_o be_v offer_v they_o long_o before_o m._n charn_n return_v into_o england_n and_o be_v the_o principal_a cause_n of_o their_o appeal_v but_o lest_o that_o all_o even_o his_o blind_a fool_n shall_v find_v he_o to_o be_v a_o poor_a caviller_n in_o this_o cause_n against_o m._n charnocke_n he_o will_v tell_v they_o another_o conjecture_n and_o that_o be_v that_o m._n charn_n seek_v occasion_n to_o quarrel_v with_o the_o archpriest_n upon_o his_o first_o entertainment_n into_o england_n and_o for_o proof_n hereof_o he_o cit_v a_o piece_n of_o a_o letter_n which_o m._n charnocke_v write_v unto_o he_o 24._o may_v 1600_o of_o which_o letter_n i_o will_v set_v some_o part_n down_o according_a to_o the_o copy_n thereof_o as_o i_o have_v see_v it_o right_o reverend_a sir_n be_v return_v into_o england_n i_o think_v it_o my_o duty_n in_o most_o humble_a manner_n to_o salute_v you_o hope_v my_o return_n can_v be_v prejudicial_a to_o any_o your_o good_a course_n and_o desire_v for_o your_o further_a satisfaction_n to_o speak_v with_o you_o when_o it_o shall_v please_v you_o this_o which_o follow_v be_v insert_v here_o in_o the_o apology_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n to_o request_v of_o you_o thus_o much_o in_o charity_n to_o write_v to_o i_o why_o send_v for_o i_o to_o declare_v the_o authority_n give_v you_o by_o cardinal_n caietane_n his_o letter_n you_o show_v i_o such_o instruction_n as_o when_o i_o come_v to_o rome_n i_o find_v be_v not_o annex_v to_o your_o commission_n as_o you_o at_o that_o time_n say_v be_v annex_v thus_o far_o in_o the_o apology_n and_o then_o towards_o the_o latter_a end_n reverend_a sir_n a_o small_a reason_n from_o you_o shall_v give_v i_o satisfaction_n for_o my_o intention_n be_v not_o to_o argue_v any_o matter_n with_o you_o but_o to_o take_v your_o answer_n simple_o as_o you_o shall_v give_v it_o and_o rest_v therein_o satisfy_v and_o this_o scruple_n be_v remove_v i_o shall_v the_o more_o confident_o deal_v with_o you_o in_o other_o matter_n which_o i_o be_o to_o impart_v unto_o you_o thus_o wish_v nothing_o more_o than_o peace_n and_o quietness_n among_o we_o i_o cease_v to_o trouble_v you_o from_o your_o charitable_a affair_n and_o do_v expect_v some_o answer_n from_o you_o at_o your_o best_a leisure_n 24._o of_o may._n but_o of_o this_o have_v this_o apology_n maker_n cull_v as_o much_o as_o be_v here_o note_v which_o part_n if_o it_o be_v take_v alone_o by_o itself_o can_v not_o imply_v a_o quarrel_n in_o any_o honest_a man_n judgement_n much_o less_o when_o it_o be_v take_v with_o all_o these_o circumstance_n but_o this_o author_n must_v either_o add_v somewhat_o still_o to_o that_o which_o he_o cit_v or_o curtail_v it_o or_o else_o he_o will_v shame_v himself_o and_o as_o for_o that_o which_o m._n charnocke_v affirm_v in_o his_o letter_n it_o be_v confirm_v by_o a_o other_o although_o the_o archpriest_n secretary_n give_v m._n charnock_n the_o lie_n five_o or_o six_o time_n in_o the_o answer_n to_o his_o letter_n which_o how_o well_o soever_o it_o suit_v with_o the_o new_a religious_a manage_n of_o
matter_n do_v not_o so_o well_o become_v a_o priest_n to_o a_o priest_n neither_o have_v m._n charnocke_v so_o behave_v himself_o but_o that_o his_o credit_n alone_o without_o any_o other_o witness_n may_v be_v think_v as_o good_a as_o m_n blackwels_n or_o this_o idle_a author_n although_o he_o do_v not_o envy_v their_o worship_n calling_n but_o mark_v i_o pray_v you_o how_o this_o matter_n will_v be_v here_o salve_v the_o archpriest_n deni_v that_o ever_o he_o say_v that_o they_o the_o feign_a instruction_n be_v express_o in_o his_o instruction_n from_o rome_n by_o which_o it_o may_v be_v gather_v that_o the_o archpriest_n do_v at_o the_o least_o propose_v such_o matter_n as_o be_v not_o in_o his_o instruction_n which_o be_v send_v from_o rome_n but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o matter_n wherewith_o he_o be_v charge_v that_o he_o shall_v use_v these_o particular_a word_n but_o he_o be_v charge_v direct_o that_o pretend_v to_o show_v the_o instruction_n which_o be_v annex_v to_o his_o commission_n he_o show_v such_o as_o be_v not_o annex_v thereunto_o and_o be_v take_v in_o the_o manner_n he_o confess_v asmuch_o and_o who_o see_v not_o what_o a_o poor_a shift_n this_o be_v the_o archpriest_n deni_v that_o he_o say_v they_o be_v express_o in_o his_o instruction_n who_o doubt_v but_o that_o the_o man_n say_v truth_n when_o answer_v his_o neighbour_n who_o call_v for_o he_o use_v these_o word_n i_o say_v i_o be_o not_o at_o home_n although_o he_o be_v at_o home_n for_o although_o it_o be_v false_a that_o he_o be_v not_o at_o home_n yet_o it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o he_o say_v he_o be_v not_o at_o home_n and_o with_o this_o jest_n do_v this_o fellow_n salve_v this_o matter_n the_o archpriest_n deni_v that_o he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v express_o in_o his_o instruction_n who_o ever_o charge_v he_o that_o he_o shall_v use_v these_o word_n these_o poor_a shift_n may_v blind_v such_o as_o willing_o will_v be_v blind_a and_o other_o man_n will_v soon_o discover_v the_o fallacy_n the_o accusation_n be_v and_o be_v that_o pretend_v to_o show_v his_o instruction_n which_o his_o commission_n mention_v to_o be_v annex_v unto_o it_o he_o draw_v out_o false_a thing_n which_o be_v never_o annex_v to_o his_o commission_n and_o he_o be_v take_v in_o the_o manner_n and_o this_o be_v it_o which_o both_o m._n charnocke_n and_o m._n colington_n will_v justify_v &_o many_o more_o such_o goodly_a matter_n if_o need_n shall_v require_v where_o these_o poor_a trick_n will_v not_o serve_v to_o any_o purpose_n i_o say_v not_o thus_o or_o thus_o express_o now_o follow_v certain_a exception_n against_o some_o letter_n write_v by_o certain_a priest_n in_o wisbich_n unto_o the_o archpriest_n i_o have_v not_o see_v the_o copy_n to_o my_o remembrance_n and_o therefore_o can_v say_v nothing_o of_o they_o more_o than_o this_o that_o it_o be_v not_o incredible_a that_o the_o archpriest_n will_v give_v cause_n of_o sharp_a word_n than_o be_v there_o use_v but_o all_o serve_v to_o prove_v somewhat_o namely_o what_o course_n be_v hold_v by_o the_o troublesome_a especial_o after_o m._n charnockes_n return_n into_o england_n but_o there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n what_o the_o master_n of_o misrule_n do_v before_o m._n charnock_n return_v into_o england_n or_o what_o cause_n they_o do_v give_v of_o these_o trouble_n to_o wit_n the_o raise_n of_o the_o slander_n of_o schism_n and_o such_o vile_a imputation_n as_o the_o prisoner_n may_v according_o have_v write_v to_o the_o archpriest_n in_o other_o term_n then_o peripsema_fw-la tuum_fw-la there_o must_v not_o be_v a_o word_n of_o this_o matter_n which_o make_v all_o the_o stir_n for_o say_v this_o fellow_n with_o shame_n enough_o ca._n 8_o fol._n 115._o of_o the_o other_o point_n of_o schism_n we_o will_v not_o talk_v at_o all_o and_o we_o be_v sorry_a that_o ever_o it_o be_v mention_v or_o bring_v in_o question_n unquiet_a people_n have_v take_v occasion_n hereby_o to_o continue_v contention_n and_o to_o make_v more_o brabble_n than_o be_v needful_a how_o easy_a a_o matter_n have_v it_o be_v then_o for_o this_o author_n to_o have_v solue_v this_o question_n propose_v in_o this_o ten_o chapter_n fol_z 148._o which_o part_n have_v break_v the_o peace_n since_o that_o he_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o bring_n of_o schism_n in_o question_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o contention_n and_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a who_o bring_v it_o again_o in_o question_n be_v tell_v so_o often_o that_o the_o jesuite_n do_v it_o and_o the_o archpriest_n both_o before_o and_o after_o the_o peace_n be_v make_v and_o the_o archpriest_n his_o letter_n be_v cite_v for_o proof_n thereof_o in_o the_o book_n to_o his_o holiness_n pag._n 63_o and_o in_o the_o book_n to_o the_o inquisition_n pag._n 60_o but_o this_o author_n must_v have_v his_o reader_n ear_n fill_v with_o other_o story_n such_o as_o be_v impertinent_a to_o his_o question_n and_o when_o he_o think_v that_o his_o reader_n have_v forget_v the_o matter_n which_o he_o propose_v then_o he_o slink_v away_o and_o begin_v afresh_o with_o some_o other_o which_o he_o handle_v as_o wise_o but_o to_o make_v a_o end_n of_o this_o chapter_n here_o be_v certain_a letter_n insert_v of_o f._n parson_n exhort_v to_o peace_n as_o though_o f._n parson_n trick_n be_v not_o know_v very_o well_o if_o this_o author_n can_v have_v bring_v forth_o any_o of_o f._n parson_n letter_n to_o his_o fellow_n f._n lyster_n or_o f._n garnet_n or_o f._n jones_n the_o jesuit_n who_o be_v the_o chief_a maintainer_n of_o that_o senseless_a libel_n of_o schism_n against_o the_o priest_n to_o persuade_v they_o to_o retract_v their_o scandalous_a opinion_n to_o correct_v their_o forwardness_n in_o insure_v catholic_a priest_n to_o exhort_v they_o to_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o their_o unchristian_a detraction_n such_o letter_n will_v have_v be_v for_o f._n parson_n credit_n but_o to_o cite_v a_o letter_n or_o exhortation_n to_o the_o priest_n injury_v to_o have_v peace_n what_o do_v it_o argue_v but_o a_o obdurate_a malice_n in_o he_o and_o a_o wicked_a desire_n that_o they_o shall_v desist_v from_o that_o to_o which_o they_o be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o wit_n the_o defence_n of_o their_o fame_n and_o the_o clear_n themselves_o from_o such_o false_a but_o most_o wicked_a imposture_n of_o schism_n rebellion_n and_o whatsoever_o a_o mischievous_a head_n can_v devise_v and_o spread_v abroad_o against_o they_o and_o so_o final_o say_v this_o author_n after_o all_o their_o former_a resistance_n and_o appeal_v aswell_o of_o d._n bagshaw_n and_o his_o fellow_n at_o wisbich_n as_o of_o m._n charnocke_n and_o other_o abroad_o they_o join_v in_o great_a number_n upon_o the_o 17._o of_o november_n last_o if_o all_o consent_v thereunto_o who_o name_n be_v subscribe_v whereof_o we_o hear_v the_o contrary_a in_o some_o some_o one_o or_o two_o who_o have_v give_v their_o consent_n in_o general_a but_o have_v not_o see_v this_o particular_a appeal_n yet_o afterward_o confirm_v it_o and_o appeal_v again_o for_o so_o much_o as_o there_o be_v any_o need_n in_o all_o which_o do_v of_o they_o one_o thing_n be_v especial_o to_o be_v note_v and_o what_o be_v that_o that_o they_o have_v never_o procure_v any_o one_o of_o all_o their_o appeal_n to_o be_v present_v hitherto_o or_o prosecute_v in_o rome_n as_o far_o as_o we_o can_v understand_v this_o last_o clause_n will_v not_o help_v if_o the_o proposition_n be_v general_a of_o all_o the_o appeal_n for_o m._n charnock_v appeal_n be_v present_v and_o prosecute_v in_o rome_n before_o this_o book_n come_v forth_o and_o this_o author_n can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a thereof_o if_o i_o be_o not_o mistake_v in_o he_o which_o yet_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v do_v within_o certain_a month_n under_o pain_n that_o all_o be_v void_a if_o it_o be_v not_o do_v but_o how_o many_o be_v these_o certain_a month_n the_o lawyer_n say_v 13._o month_n if_o we_o shall_v count_v they_o by_o the_o month_n and_o upon_o just_a cause_n 26._o month_n from_o the_o appeal_v within_o which_o time_n doubtless_o the_o author_n of_o this_o apology_n hear_v of_o the_o appellant_n at_o rome_n and_o lancelot_n l._n 4._o instit_fw-la juris_fw-la canon_n de_fw-fr appellationibus_fw-la cap._n accidit_fw-la affirm_v yet_o a_o long_a time_n may_v have_v be_v grant_v for_o the_o prosecution_n of_o a_o appeal_v but_o as_o i_o think_v no_o man_n do_v now_o doubt_n but_o that_o the_o priest_n have_v intention_n to_o follow_v their_o appeal_v and_o will_v give_v this_o cause_n of_o their_o publish_n of_o book_n pendent_fw-la light_fw-la that_o be_v while_o the_o controversy_n hang_v for_o that_o the_o archpriest_n notwithstanding_o their_o appeal_v denounce_v they_o to_o have_v incur_v the_o censure_n &_o lose_v their_o faculty_n because_o they_o subscribe_v to_o
the_o society_n but_o some_o particular_a man_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o their_o preface_n to_o the_o book_n dedicate_v to_o the_o inquisition_n pag_n 5._o where_o they_o make_v this_o protestation_n neque_fw-la quae_fw-la de_fw-la societate_fw-la hîc_fw-la dicentur_fw-la in_fw-la universam_fw-la societatem_fw-la dicta_fw-la velimus_fw-la cvi_fw-la tantum_fw-la tribuimus_fw-la quantum_fw-la eius_fw-la virtus_fw-la &_o doctrina_fw-la postulant_fw-la hic_fw-la tantum_fw-la particulares_fw-la quorundam_fw-la actiones_fw-la conquerimur_fw-la etc._n etc._n neither_o will_v we_o that_o what_o be_v say_v here_o of_o the_o society_n be_v say_v of_o the_o whole_a society_n to_o which_o we_o do_v attribute_v as_o much_o as_o their_o virtue_n and_o learning_n deserve_v we_o do_v complain_v here_o of_o the_o particular_a action_n of_o some_o only_a etc._n etc._n and_o as_o it_o shall_v seem_v this_o matter_n trouble_v the_o author_n of_o this_o apology_n much_o more_o as_o it_o be_v against_o a_o few_o jesuit_n then_o as_o it_o be_v against_o all_o the_o rest_n which_o cause_v himself_o still_o to_o forget_v himself_o or_o his_o matter_n rather_o when_o any_o occasion_n occur_v as_o it_o do_v often_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o jesuit_n and_o here_o he_o run_v along_o after_o they_o with_o these_o admiration_n what_o manner_n of_o people_n they_o be_v for_o diverse_a respect_n that_o be_v here_o discover_v although_o they_o be_v not_o the_o same_o man_n which_o be_v here_o discover_v and_o of_o what_o account_n with_o our_o very_a enemy_n themselves_o of_o what_o other_o than_o hypocrite_n matchivilian_n and_o traitor_n to_o their_o country_n some_o of_o they_o be_v superior_n as_o every_o parish_n in_o london_n have_v schoolmaster_n yea_o and_o some_o in_o high_a office_n some_o of_o singular_a merit_n towards_o the_o common_a cause_n such_o cause_n perhaps_o as_o to_o which_o the_o infamy_n of_o catholic_a priest_n must_v be_v judge_v most_o necessary_a other_o notorious_a for_o their_o know_a virtue_n how_o glad_o will_v blind_v hugh_n see_v some_o of_o they_o here_o in_o england_n for_o then_o neither_o shall_v the_o good_a have_v cause_n to_o grieve_v nor_o the_o bad_a be_v conform_v in_o their_o naughty_a course_n who_o see_v the_o suppose_v best_a to_o be_v so_o bad_a they_o do_v rash_o conjecture_v that_o there_o be_v none_o good_a for_o which_o folly_n of_o they_o they_o and_o their_o bad_a guide_n must_v answer_v at_o the_o last_o day_n and_o smart_v long_o before_o unless_o they_o repent_v themselves_o while_o they_o have_v time_n to_o repent_v thus_o much_o concern_v this_o author_n conceit_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o libel_v retort_v upon_o himself_o and_o his_o partner_n in_o this_o apology_n and_o other_o his_o libel_n which_o he_o will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o justify_v now_o follow_v his_o exception_n against_o the_o two_o book_n which_o he_o term_v libel_n wherein_o he_o purpose_v to_o discover_v foul_a fault_n to_o have_v be_v as_o falsehood_n deceit_n malice_n and_o slanderous_a calumniation_n always_o provide_v that_o whereas_o the_o reader_n have_v still_o expect_v and_o live_v in_o hope_n to_o see_v somewhat_o to_o the_o purpose_n now_o he_o must_v take_v this_o cold_a comfort_n to_o be_v remit_v back_o to_o the_o chapter_n before_o handle_v for_o a_o large_a proof_n of_o what_o be_v to_o be_v say_v first_o he_o begin_v with_o the_o latin_a book_n which_o be_v dedicate_v to_o his_o holiness_n who_o title_n be_v declaratio_fw-la motuum_fw-la etc._n etc._n a_o declaration_n of_o the_o stir_n and_o trouble_n that_o have_v rise_v in_o england_n between_o the_o jesuit_n on_o the_o one_o side_n together_o with_o m._n g._n blackwel_n archpriest_n in_o all_o thing_n favour_v they_o and_o the_o seminary_n priest_n on_o the_o other_o side_n from_o the_o death_n of_o cardinal_n allen_n of_o pious_a memory_n unto_o this_o year_n 1601._o in_o this_o very_a title_n say_v he_o and_o first_o page_n 5._o or_o 6._o abuse_n and_o sleight_n and_o shift_n may_v be_v note_v to_o be_v use_v towards_o his_o holiness_n etc._n etc._n for_o first_o whereas_o the_o whole_a world_n know_v that_o their_o controversy_n be_v with_o the_o archpriest_n as_o appear_v by_o their_o appellation_n to_o his_o holiness_n a_o 1600._o 17._o novemb._n and_o other_o before_o and_o that_o their_o stomach_n against_o the_o jesuit_n be_v for_o stand_v with_o he_o and_o for_o as_o by_o the_o whole_a discourse_n of_o both_o these_o book_n appear_v here_o they_o change_v the_o whole_a controversy_n and_o do_v say_v that_o it_o be_v with_o the_o jesuit_n and_o m._n blackwell_n that_o favour_v they_o so_o as_o he_o be_v put_v here_o but_o as_o a_o appendix_n in_o the_o cause_n which_o be_v plain_a falsehood_n this_o be_v the_o first_o fault_n which_o be_v find_v in_o the_o latin_a book_n &_o all_o thing_n consider_v it_o will_v not_o prove_v a_o fault_n much_o less_o so_o foul_a as_o this_o author_n will_v it_o shall_v seem_v to_o be_v the_o appellation_n be_v make_v from_o the_o archp._n &_o not_o from_o the_o jesuit_n because_o appellation_n be_v make_v from_o such_o only_a as_o be_v and_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o be_v superior_n such_o be_v not_o the_o jesuit_n over_o the_o secular_a priest_n neither_o do_v the_o appeal_n from_o the_o archpr._n clear_v the_o jesuit_n who_o in_o the_o appellation_n itself_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v the_o chief_a fountain_n of_o all_o these_o broil_n as_o all_o the_o world_n may_v see_v in_o the_o appeal_v and_o he_o do_v very_o false_o affirm_v that_o the_o whole_a discourse_n show_v no_o other_o as_o himself_o can_v remember_v when_o he_o list_v namely_o in_o his_o table_n prefix_v to_o his_o apology_n numb_a 23._o where_o he_o cit_v this_o sentence_n out_o of_o his_o latin_a book_n pag._n 30._o jesuitae_n etc._n etc._n the_o jesuit_n despair_v to_o be_v able_a to_o get_v superiority_n to_o themselves_o by_o way_n of_o voice_n or_o suffrage_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n hate_v and_o fly_v to_o admit_v episcopal_a dignity_n into_o england_n think_v to_o procure_v dominion_n to_o themselves_o under_o the_o mask_n of_o a_o other_o man_n person_n etc._n etc._n have_v this_o fellow_n now_o forget_v what_o his_o own_o judgement_n be_v there_o of_o the_o priest_n their_o conceit_n of_o this_o matter_n have_v not_o he_o persuade_v his_o reader_n that_o the_o principal_a and_o only_a ground_n of_o this_o our_o present_a contention_n and_o scandalous_a controversy_n be_v the_o very_a same_o disease_n of_o emulation_n partly_o of_o lay_v man_n against_o priest_n and_o partly_o of_o priest_n against_o religious_a man_n especial_o the_o father_n of_o the_o society_n with_o who_o at_o this_o present_a they_o have_v to_o do_v apol._n cap._n 1._o fol._n 2._o and_o will_v he_o now_o have_v his_o reader_n believe_v that_o the_o whole_a world_n know_v the_o contrary_a and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o principal_o against_o the_o jesuit_n and_o whereas_o it_o be_v here_o say_v that_o the_o archpr._n be_v put_v as_o a_o appendix_n some_o indeed_o do_v think_v that_o he_o have_v bind_v himself_o apprentice_n to_o the_o jesuit_n but_o i_o do_v not_o hear_v that_o the_o priest_n do_v talk_v of_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o the_o second_o foul_a fault_n which_o here_o be_v find_v be_v that_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o seminary_n reside_v in_o england_n be_v put_v for_o the_o opposite_a part_n of_o which_o say_v he_o these_o contention_n be_v not_o the_o twenty_o part_n and_o this_o be_v prove_v by_o their_o own_o confession_n in_o the_o former_a chapter_n perchance_o this_o fellow_n have_v relation_n to_o the_o question_n make_v to_o m_o bishop_n and_o m._n charnocke_n how_o many_o they_o do_v certain_o know_v to_o approve_v this_o their_o mission_n and_o to_o be_v privy_a to_o the_o matter_n that_o shall_v be_v propose_v etc._n etc._n chap_n 9_o apol._n 131._o to_o which_o these_o priest_n make_v their_o answer_n according_a to_o their_o own_o certain_a knowledge_n which_o answer_n be_v there_o deceitful_o insert_v as_o have_v be_v show_v and_o be_v here_o as_o deceitful_o again_o bring_v by_o he_o for_o his_o purpose_n their_o confession_n be_v that_o there_o be_v quàm_fw-la plures_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la very_o many_o priest_n as_o appear_v where_o m._n charnock_v examination_n be_v set_v down_o fol._n 130_o which_o he_o there_o prove_v by_o certain_a letter_n which_o he_o bring_v with_o he_o which_o testify_v as_o much_o and_o by_o their_o answer_n of_o their_o certain_a knowledge_n which_o they_o can_v not_o have_v but_o by_o present_a or_o particular_a letter_n this_o fellow_n take_v a_o silly_a advantage_n to_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o 20._o part_n by_o their_o own_o confession_n the_o priest_n do_v call_v themselves_o priest_n of_o the_o seminary_n because_o they_o be_v so_o and_o by_o this_o name_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o jesuit_n who_o be_v
the_o reader_n may_v imagine_v that_o it_o be_v not_o worth_a the_o stoop_n for_o which_o this_o man_n let_v lie_v if_o it_o be_v not_o too_o hot_a or_o too_o heavy_a for_o he_o as_o here_o also_o he_o except_v against_o the_o priest_n their_o print_v of_o their_o book_n notwithstanding_o the_o scandal_n which_o may_v grow_v by_o the_o come_n abroad_o of_o these_o dissension_n to_o which_o answer_n be_v make_v that_o they_o must_v look_v to_o it_o who_o drive_v the_o priest_n to_o this_o course_n have_v no_o other_o way_n leave_v for_o they_o to_o recover_v their_o fame_n which_o be_v most_o injurious_o take_v away_o from_o they_o he_o except_v also_o against_o that_o which_o be_v say_v of_o card._n allen_n his_o favour_n towards_o the_o priest_n which_o he_o say_v he_o have_v refute_v in_o the_o three_o and_o four_o chapter_n in_o which_o this_o author_n have_v commit_v as_o often_o he_o do_v in_o this_o kind_n a_o more_o gross_a fault_n then_o if_o he_o have_v say_v that_o his_o book_n have_v be_v print_v at_o roan_n in_o france_n for_o this_o will_v have_v trouble_v none_o but_o some_o cavil_v fool_n and_o these_o trick_n to_o refer_v his_o reader_n so_o often_o to_o such_o place_n where_o he_o shall_v find_v nothing_o of_o that_o matter_n for_o which_o he_o be_v send_v hither_o may_v trouble_v even_o his_o gentle_a reader_n patience_n well_o yet_o you_o must_v go_v look_n in_o the_o three_o chapter_n for_o a_o matter_n which_o be_v not_o there_o touch_v by_o he_o there_o be_v in_o the_o four_o chapter_n some_o proof_n that_o the_o cardinal_n dislike_v some_o action_n in_o which_o be_v some_o temporal_a man_n and_o some_o priest_n long_o ago_o many_o year_n before_o these_o stir_n begin_v which_o belong_v nothing_o to_o the_o controversy_n now_o in_o question_n which_o be_v whether_o the_o priest_n be_v schismatickes_n who_o defer_v to_o accept_v the_o archpr._n before_o they_o do_v see_v the_o breve_fw-la or_o to_o these_o private_a quarrel_n of_o which_o it_o seem_v by_o a_o letter_n of_o his_o set_n in_o the_o second_o chapter_n he_o be_v inform_v before_o his_o death_n or_o three_o to_o the_o stir_n which_o the_o jesuit_n begin_v in_o the_o college_n about_o the_o same_o time_n to_o conclude_v there_o be_v nothing_o recite_v there_o which_o be_v here_o affirm_v neither_o be_v that_o which_o be_v lay_v to_o fa._n heywood_n his_o chaleng_v of_o legantine_n power_n in_o england_n any_o way_n solue_v but_o in_o this_o manner_n and_o this_o be_v all_o the_o difference_n that_o ever_o be_v between_o f._n heywood_n and_o f._n parson_n as_o if_o the_o question_n have_v be_v which_o be_v the_o way_n to_o poplington_n yea_o there_o be_v as_o much_o confess_v as_o f._n heywood_n be_v charge_v with_o for_o the_o particular_n as_o any_o man_n may_v see_v in_o this_o 164._o leaf_n the_o reader_n must_v go_v look_v here_o and_o there_o for_o diverse_a other_o matter_n but_o d._n haddock_n and_o m._n martin_n array_n be_v here_o to_o be_v defend_v by_o the_o author_n for_o that_o poor_a resistance_n which_o they_o make_v unto_o the_o two_o priest_n indeed_o these_o good_a proctor_n come_v unto_o the_o two_o priest_n within_o two_o day_n or_o three_o of_o their_o arrival_n at_o rome_n and_o be_v so_o hot_a with_o they_o as_o m._n martin_n array_n stir_v not_o out_o of_o his_o chamber_n above_o a_o fortnight_n after_o he_o have_v be_v all_o that_o while_n possess_v with_o a_o ague_n which_o some_o of_o his_o friend_n say_v that_o he_o have_v before_o he_o take_v that_o heat_n but_o a_o sudden_a joy_n perchance_o that_o the_o two_o priest_n be_v that_o day_n to_o be_v apprehend_v put_v life_n and_o health_n into_o he_o upon_o the_o seast_z day_n of_o s._n tho._n of_o canterbury_n and_o make_v he_o come_v abroad_o and_o what_o these_o proctor_n do_v after_o at_o the_o appearance_n of_o the_o two_o priest_n i_o have_v before_o show_v and_o what_o m._n martin_n write_v into_o england_n thereof_o the_o particular_n which_o touch_v these_o proctor_n their_o person_n i_o know_v not_o and_o therefore_o i_o leave_v it_o unto_o they_o to_o declare_v who_o think_v it_o expedient_a to_o make_v they_o know_v in_o this_o cause_n yet_o do_v i_o not_o well_o understand_v how_o there_o be_v any_o affinity_n between_o cardinal_n allen_n and_o d._n haddock_n which_o this_o fellow_n will_v needs_o have_v for_o the_o doctor_n credit_n neither_o of_o they_o have_v be_v at_o any_o time_n marry_v and_o i_o have_v hear_v that_o m._n martin_n array_n be_v extraordinary_o favour_v by_o sir_n francis_n walsingham_n by_o who_o he_o be_v admonish_v to_o depart_v out_o of_o england_n before_o some_o matter_n shall_v chance_v which_o will_v short_o chance_v and_o will_v be_v some_o let_v to_o his_o passage_n which_o kind_n of_o usage_n at_o that_o time_n to_o wit_n when_o the_o great_a trouble_n be_v in_o the_o year_n 1586._o be_v lay_v together_o with_o his_o be_v then_o set_v at_o liberty_n may_v give_v suspicion_n to_o some_o that_o all_o be_v not_o as_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v although_o in_o time_n of_o less_o trouble_v some_o man_n have_v find_v the_o favour_n by_o extraordinary_a mean_n to_o have_v their_o liberty_n at_o the_o intercession_n of_o some_o great_a man_n or_o some_o high_o favour_a friend_n now_o follow_v his_o defence_n of_o m._n standish_n and_o diverse_a other_o and_o whereas_o the_o priest_n have_v set_v down_o in_o their_o book_n that_o master_n standish_n have_v give_v his_o name_n to_o become_v a_o jesuite_n and_o therefore_o no_o fit_a man_n to_o deal_v for_o they_o in_o the_o procure_n of_o this_o subordination_n which_o be_v pretend_v to_o have_v be_v make_v to_o take_v up_o controversy_n which_o be_v between_o jesuit_n and_o priest_n as_o cap._n 8._o fol._n 124._o this_o author_n affirm_v or_o priest_n and_o priest_n and_o yet_o be_v the_o principal_a instrumentas_fw-la be_v well_o know_v to_o all_o man_n and_o it_o be_v confess_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n fol._n 98._o and_o 99_o this_o author_n let_v that_o go_v without_o any_o word_n to_o the_o contrary_a for_o intrueth_n he_o can_v deny_v it_o and_o take_v occasion_n to_o say_v somewhat_o touch_v that_o which_o the_o priest_n affirm_v of_o m._n standish_n that_o be_v that_o he_o do_v use_v the_o name_n of_o the_o priest_n as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v send_v by_o the_o priest_n whereas_o indeed_o he_o be_v not_o and_o that_o he_o himself_o say_v at_o his_o return_n in_o the_o hear_n of_o diverse_a priest_n who_o will_v justify_v it_o that_o he_o have_v their_o interpretative_a consent_n and_o that_o he_o presume_v that_o they_o will_v consent_v to_o that_o which_o he_o do_v but_o when_o this_o author_n come_v to_o prove_v that_o m._n standish_n do_v nothing_o without_o the_o priest_n their_o consent_n in_o the_o procure_n of_o this_o subordination_n he_o return_v his_o reader_n to_o the_o eight_o chapter_n for_o diverse_a priest_n letter_n which_o already_o i_o have_v show_v be_v all_o write_v after_o that_o this_o subordination_n be_v make_v which_o argue_v a_o notable_a impudency_n in_o this_o author_n that_o he_o will_v so_o peremptory_o affirm_v whatsoever_o may_v sound_v any_o way_n in_o the_o ear_n of_o those_o who_o affection_n blind_v to_o make_v for_o his_o purpose_n although_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o indifferent_a he_o work_v his_o confusion_n for_o other_o disproof_n also_o of_o m._n blackwels_n and_o the_o cardinal_n caietans_n ignorance_n in_o our_o english_a affair_n his_o reader_n must_v go_v back_o to_o the_o eight_o and_o nine_o chapter_n he_o send_v also_o his_o reader_n to_o the_o three_o chapter_n to_o see_v how_o false_o the_o jesuite_n be_v say_v to_o seek_v their_o own_o and_o that_o they_o trouble_v the_o peace_n of_o england_n and_o persecute_v more_o than_o heretic_n to_o the_o which_o it_o have_v be_v answer_v that_o they_o do_v seek_v their_o own_o in_o some_o sort_n for_o so_o much_o as_o pride_n and_o what_o else_o follow_v thereon_o may_v be_v call_v they_o and_o that_o also_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o they_o seek_v quae_fw-la jesu_fw-la christi_fw-la as_o this_o author_n do_v there_o challenge_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v belong_v to_o jesu_n christ_n for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o alm_n of_o catholic_n for_o relief_n of_o priest_n and_o other_o catholic_n may_v be_v say_v to_o belong_v to_o jesu_n christ_n and_o that_o they_o labour_v by_o infamy_n to_o seduce_v the_o catholic_a laity_n from_o that_o love_n and_o reverence_n which_o they_o owe_v unto_o catholic_a priest_n which_o be_v a_o persecution_n against_o the_o priest_n more_o grievous_a than_o any_o that_o have_v be_v raise_v by_o any_o heretic_n against_o they_o for_o whereas_o there_o have_v be_v a_o most_o charitable_a correspondence_n between_o the_o catholic_a laiety_n
and_o the_o priest_n now_o the_o world_n be_v come_v to_o this_o pass_n that_o he_o be_v no_o zealous_a or_o godly_a catholic_a that_o will_v not_o run_v from_o place_n to_o place_n to_o disgrace_v all_o such_o priest_n as_o refuse_v to_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o jesuit_n or_o in_o this_o present_a controversy_n will_v not_o acknowledge_v that_o they_o live_v in_o schism_n and_o deserve_v eternal_a shame_n and_o reproach_n because_o they_o defer_v their_o obedience_n to_o a_o authority_n until_o they_o do_v see_v what_o be_v their_o superior_a his_o will_n concern_v it_o at_o what_o time_n they_o all_o submit_v themselves_o unfeigned_o whatsoever_o this_o author_n most_o wicked_o sugge_v to_o his_o reader_n in_o this_o place_n without_o any_o proof_n at_o all_o upon_o certain_a of_o his_o most_o absurd_a surmize_n for_o which_o also_o he_o send_v his_o reader_n to_o the_o former_a chapter_n where_o he_o shall_v see_v perhaps_o and_o as_o it_o be_v suppose_v and_o it_o be_v very_o likely_a and_o such_o like_a stuff_n as_o a_o man_n who_o esteem_v of_o his_o credit_n will_v be_v ashamed_a of_o in_o so_o weighty_a a_o matter_n and_o for_o his_o foolish_a assertion_n that_o if_o it_o have_v be_v unfeigned_a it_o will_v have_v wrought_v some_o permanent_a effect_n there_o be_v a_o old_a say_n that_o there_o must_v go_v two_o word_n to_o a_o bargain_n and_o so_o say_v i_o that_o if_o there_o must_v be_v peace_n between_o two_o part_n both_o the_o part_n must_v do_v their_o part_n to_o preserve_v it_o for_o who_o see_v not_o that_o it_o be_v a_o most_o absurd_a jest_n that_o if_o peace_n be_v break_v by_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o one_o part_n the_o other_o shall_v be_v blame_v for_o not_o deal_v sincere_o and_o unfeigned_o the_o priest_n have_v say_v that_o the_o jesuit_n and_o the_o archpriest_n do_v break_v the_o peace_n and_o they_o have_v show_v how_o and_o that_o which_o they_o have_v say_v herein_o can_v be_v control_v and_o that_o be_v that_o fa_n jones_n the_o jesuit_n after_o the_o peace_n make_v fetch_v out_o of_o hell_n itself_o as_o by_o the_o event_n it_o appear_v that_o most_o wicked_a paradox_n of_o his_o fellow_n jesuit_n fa._n lister_n concern_v schism_n and_o the_o archpriest_n also_o after_o the_o peace_n make_v break_v the_o same_o peace_n by_o publish_v a_o resolution_n from_o the_o mother_n city_n that_o the_o refuser_n of_o the_o appoint_a authority_n be_v schismatics_n which_o resolution_n he_o affirm_v he_o have_v either_o from_o f._n warford_n or_o fa_fw-it tichborne_n a_o pair_n of_o young_a english_a jesuite_n and_o this_o be_v the_o epistle_n which_o be_v not_o only_o mention_v but_o set_v down_o in_o the_o book_n to_o his_o holiness_n pag_n 63_o and_o which_o this_o author_n sly_o overslip_v and_o stop_v his_o reader_n mouth_n with_o the_o marginal_a note_n which_o be_v put_v by_o the_o priest_n to_o wit_n origo_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o beginning_n of_o the_o new_a contention_n be_v a_o violent_a epistle_n of_o the_o archpriest_n which_o here_o this_o author_n cit_v and_o run_v in_o his_o new_a find_v mild_a and_o religious_a term_n upon_o the_o priest_n because_o they_o will_v break_v out_o for_o a_o angry_a epistle_n and_o so_o laugh_v in_o his_o sleeve_n to_o think_v how_o he_o can_v cousin_v the_o blind_a obedient_a which_o must_v believe_v any_o thing_n that_o he_o tell_v they_o he_o shut_v up_o this_o matter_n without_o tell_v they_o what_o this_o angry_a epistle_n be_v or_o that_o it_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o book_n to_o his_o holiness_n lest_o that_o he_o shall_v have_v discover_v the_o weakness_n of_o his_o cause_n and_o consequent_o his_o own_o wickedness_n who_o in_o so_o weak_a a_o case_n will_v use_v so_o wicked_a term_n against_o catholic_a priest_n this_o you_o see_v how_o this_o fellow_n have_v answer_v the_o book_n which_o be_v dedicate_v to_o his_o hol._n and_o what_o poor_a gear_n he_o pick_v out_o sometime_o out_o of_o the_o discourse_n sometime_o out_o of_o the_o margin_n and_o let_v this_o discourse_n go_v quiet_o by_o he_o and_o with_o all_o this_o niceness_n and_o choice_n of_o some_o place_n to_o which_o he_o may_v make_v colourable_a show_n of_o answer_n he_o bring_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v examine_v will_v breed_v his_o own_o shame_n and_o confusion_n the_o appeal_v he_o say_v shall_v be_v answer_v by_o the_o pope_n who_o in_o a_o brief_a of_o the_o 17._o of_o august_n 1601._o refuse_v it_o for_o peace_n sake_n as_o there_o be_v say_v be_v induce_v thereunto_o perchance_o by_o such_o as_o be_v loath_a to_o hear_v these_o matter_n come_v in_o question_n yet_o since_o this_o breve_fw-la all_o the_o world_n be_v make_v a_o witness_n that_o these_o matter_n have_v be_v handle_v at_o rome_n and_o that_o there_o be_v just_a cause_n to_o appeal_v notwithstanding_o the_o fine_a gloss_n here_o make_v by_o this_o author_n who_o wish_v perchance_o by_o this_o time_n that_o he_o have_v not_o so_o much_o commend_v this_o pope_n last_o he_o agitate_v a_o letter_n of_o m._n much_o his_o writing_n to_o mon_fw-fr signior_n morto_n a_o bishop_n in_o italy_n who_o be_v join_v with_o doctor_n lewes_n bishop_n of_o cassana_n in_o many_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n which_o letter_n be_v say_v in_o the_o priest_n their_o book_n to_o have_v be_v send_v by_o the_o two_o messenger_n unto_o he_o and_o in_o reason_n the_o priest_n who_o say_v so_o shall_v have_v have_v credit_n until_o the_o contrary_n can_v have_v be_v prove_v which_o can_v never_o be_v with_o more_o substantial_a argument_n then_o be_v here_o bring_v to_o wit_n it_o be_v not_o find_v among_o their_o paper_n as_o though_o they_o have_v be_v 17._o day_n in_o rome_n before_o that_o the_o jesuite_n and_o the_o sbirri_n carry_v they_o to_o prison_n can_v not_o convey_v it_o as_o it_o be_v direct_v before_o that_o their_o paper_n be_v seize_v on_o or_o second_o the_o two_o messenger_n never_o speak_v to_o fa._n parson_n of_o such_o a_o letter_n ergo_fw-la they_o carry_v no_o such_o letter_n with_o they_o as_o though_o fa._n parson_n be_v the_o man_n that_o must_v know_v all_o thing_n and_o be_v not_o rather_o keep_v so_o short_a as_o diverse_a in_o the_o city_n note_v how_o he_o be_v trouble_v for_o that_o he_o can_v get_v no_o other_o answer_n of_o the_o priest_n to_o his_o curious_a question_n than_o that_o time_n and_o place_n shall_v discover_v what_o they_o have_v to_o say_v and_o although_o afterward_o he_o be_v admit_v by_o they_o to_o be_v their_o examiner_n it_o be_v not_o without_o the_o condition_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v bind_v to_o answer_v to_o his_o question_n which_o condition_n the_o fiscall_v do_v take_v and_o agree_v unto_o before_o he_o can_v obtain_v of_o they_o to_o let_v fa._n parson_n be_v the_o examiner_n and_o it_o may_v be_v think_v that_o when_o they_o be_v ask_v such_o idle_a question_n they_o do_v use_v this_o licence_n or_o their_o own_o right_n no_o oath_n in_o this_o kind_n bind_v any_o man_n to_o answer_v to_o all_o thing_n propose_v unto_o they_o and_o fa._n parson_n may_v call_v to_o mind_n if_o it_o please_v he_o that_o to_o some_o question_n he_o be_v direct_o deny_v a_o answer_n the_o matter_n contain_v in_o m._n much_o his_o letter_n be_v there_o so_o sufficient_o handle_v as_o this_o author_n say_v nothing_o thereof_o in_o this_o place_n but_o refer_v his_o reader_n back_o to_o foam_v place_n already_o handle_v and_o answer_v he_o glance_v at_o that_o which_o be_v there_o say_v of_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n in_o england_n for_o which_o all_o the_o catholic_n if_o they_o will_v may_v see_v his_o eagerness_n against_o their_o good_a and_o comfort_n in_o this_o time_n of_o persecution_n that_o he_o can_v hear_v of_o any_o who_o shall_v say_v it_o be_v necessary_a but_o he_o be_v straight_o on_o his_o jack_n for_o it_o and_o because_o one_o say_v once_o that_o it_o be_v either_o most_o necessary_a in_o time_n of_o persecution_n or_o a_o vain_a and_o as_o a_o superfluous_a ceremony_n in_o god_n church_n because_o there_o only_o be_v the_o proper_a use_n thereof_o he_o play_v upon_o the_o latter_a word_n as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v affirm_v by_o any_o one_o and_o appli_v they_o to_o such_o as_o speak_v for_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o sacrament_n he_o except_v also_o against_o that_o which_o m._n much_o affirm_v of_o fa._n parson_n his_o state_n book_n and_o be_v aggrieve_v that_o he_o only_o be_v name_v among_o such_o as_o have_v write_v of_o such_o a_o subject_n and_o for_o the_o love_n he_o bear_v to_o cardinal_n allen_n and_o other_o of_o our_o nation_n he_o set_v down_o in_o print_n what_o they_o have_v write_v concern_v such_o matter_n as_o though_o their_o fact_n do_v excuse_v
there_o be_v over_o much_o possibility_n to_o deserve_v a_o far_o worse_a death_n than_o ston_a may_v say_v with_o christ_n himself_o and_o to_o his_o imitation_n multa_fw-la bona_fw-la opera_fw-la ostendi_fw-la vobis_fw-la propter_fw-la quod_fw-la eorum_fw-la opus_fw-la i_o lapidatis_fw-la they_o have_v return_v i_o hatred_n for_o my_o love_n towards_o they_o they_o have_v hate_v i_o with_o unjust_a hatred_n they_o have_v pay_v i_o evil_n for_o good_a i_o have_v procure_v they_o many_o benefit_n for_o which_o now_o they_o go_v about_o to_o stone_n i_o and_o when_o poor_a fool_n do_v see_v such_o a_o conglomeration_n to_o use_v his_o own_o word_n of_o scripture_n they_o never_o reflect_v how_o the_o devil_n himself_o and_o other_o to_o he_o imitation_n do_v cite_v scripture_n and_o set_v a_o better_a show_n of_o matter_n than_o these_o man_n yet_o have_v do_v who_o never_o come_v to_o the_o point_n of_o this_o controversy_n but_o bear_v off_o still_o and_o when_o they_o say_v any_o thing_n concern_v it_o they_o fetch_v it_o so_o far_o off_o as_o a_o thing_n do_v in_o this_o month_n must_v stay_v to_o be_v think_v upon_o by_o occasion_n offer_v many_o month_n after_o as_o be_v show_v in_o the_o eight_o and_o nine_o chapter_n which_o this_o author_n here_o quote_v in_o the_o margin_n for_o his_o reader_n great_a comfort_n and_o edification_n but_o he_o will_v pass_v to_o the_o particular_n the_o first_o particular_n be_v that_o fa._n parson_n be_v call_v parson_n alias_o cowbucke_n and_o this_o be_v take_v in_o very_o evil_a part_n notwithstanding_o diverse_a in_o england_n be_v call_v so_o alias_o so_o and_o this_o be_v so_o ordinary_a a_o matter_n in_o england_n many_o do_v doubt_n that_o this_o author_n know_v some_o cause_n why_o he_o shall_v winch_v at_o it_o as_o he_o do_v and_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o no_o one_o of_o the_o kindred_n be_v ever_o so_o call_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o a_o brother_n of_o he_o who_o live_v in_o a_o house_n with_o m._n brinkly_n here_o mention_v fol._n 183._o be_v call_v cubbucke_n and_o whereas_o it_o have_v be_v say_v that_o by_o occasion_n of_o his_o deal_n in_o some_o matter_n the_o capital_a law_n be_v make_v in_o england_n his_o letter_n be_v show_v of_o the_o 24_o of_o january_n to_o the_o earl_n of_o anguise_n which_o do_v testify_v how_o he_o busy_v himself_o in_o state_n matter_n upon_o his_o first_o come_v into_o england_n although_o he_o will_v cloak_n his_o deal_n with_o religion_n the_o second_o imputation_n as_o he_o call_v it_o that_o fa._n parson_n come_v away_o be_v evident_a neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v excuse_v by_o his_o general_a care_n of_o the_o cause_n for_o as_o the_o priest_n say_v and_o m._n do._n ely_n confirm_v it_o in_o his_o note_n upon_o the_o apology_n pag._n 211._o the_o two_o elder_a seminary_n do_v send_v into_o england_n more_o priest_n and_o nourish_v in_o they_o great_a number_n of_o scholar_n at_o one_o time_n as_o he_o think_v than_o these_o new_a seminary_n with_o the_o old_a now_o decay_a will_v furnish_v to_o send_v into_o england_n in_o diverse_a year_n and_o for_o the_o number_n of_o student_n priest_n and_o proper_a youth_n there_o be_v more_o for_o many_o year_n together_o so_o long_o as_o d._n allen_n govern_v in_o these_o seminary_n at_o one_o time_n then_o be_v now_o or_o hereafter_o like_a to_o be_v in_o all_o the_o seminary_n put_v they_o all_o together_o i_o have_v see_v say_v do._n ely_n fifty_o priest_n in_o one_o year_n send_v out_o of_o rheims_n and_o yet_o fifty_o other_o priest_n remain_v in_o the_o college_n st●ll_o have_v all_o the_o seminary_n so_o many_o in_o they_o now_o no_o no._n and_o the_o catholic_n in_o scotland_n have_v have_v more_o increase_n by_o the_o seminary_n priest_n then_o by_o the_o jesuit_n whatsoever_o this_o author_n affirm_v fol._n 185._o for_o the_o jesuit_n teach_v the_o scottish_a nation_n how_o to_o keep_v their_o conscience_n lock_v up_o and_o to_o go_v without_o any_o conscience_n to_o the_o protestant_n church_n as_o good_a proof_n will_v be_v make_v but_o after_o all_o fa._n parson_n good_a deed_n for_o which_o for_o so_o much_o as_o they_o may_v be_v call_v good_a he_o have_v and_o shall_v have_v many_o thanks_n this_o author_n enlarge_v himself_o very_o far_o when_o he_o say_v that_o without_o these_o good_a deed_n it_o be_v like_a that_o the_o priest_n have_v not_o now_o be_v priest_n neither_o without_o nor_o within_o england_n and_o why_o so_o you_o shall_v find_v that_o many_o of_o they_o be_v send_v in_o by_o he_o this_o be_v true_a and_o more_o than_o a_o good_a many_o have_v be_v send_v by_o he_o and_o if_o we_o will_v wrangle_v with_o he_o we_o may_v say_v that_o he_o send_v some_o to_o disgrace_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o secular_a priest_n or_o else_o they_o have_v never_o be_v make_v priest_n by_o he_o he_o be_v tell_v before_o such_o particular_n of_o they_o as_o if_o he_o have_v have_v any_o care_n of_o the_o church_n he_o will_v not_o have_v make_v they_o priest_n but_o put_v the_o case_n that_o the_o seminary_n of_o rheims_n have_v not_o decay_v by_o the_o erection_n of_o the_o new_a seminary_n why_o may_v not_o these_o and_o many_o more_o than_o now_o be_v be_v priest_n both_o within_o and_o without_o england_n can_v this_o author_n say_v so_o much_o of_o all_o the_o new_a seminary_n together_o with_o the_o old_a also_o as_o m._n doct._n ely_n have_v testify_v for_o that_o of_o rheims_n only_o but_o if_o this_o author_n can_v deceive_v his_o reader_n it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o he_o desire_v which_o he_o think_v will_v take_v best_a effect_n if_o he_o can_v persuade_v he_o that_o the_o seminary_n have_v more_o flourish_v since_o f._n parson_n go_v out_o of_o england_n then_o before_o although_o nothing_o so_o many_o priest_n have_v come_v into_o england_n as_o do_v before_o according_a to_o the_o rate_n of_o the_o time_n the_o three_o accusation_n against_o f._n parson_n be_v say_v this_o author_n that_o after_o his_o go_v out_o of_o england_n he_o never_o cease_v to_o exasperate_v the_o chief_a magistrate_n with_o libel_n and_o factious_a letter_n this_o accusation_n depend_v in_o the_o proof_n upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o such_o as_o to_o who_o his_o letter_n have_v be_v show_v and_o by_o his_o greenecoat_n and_o such_o like_a pamphlet_n but_o especial_o his_o book_n of_o title_n wherein_o he_o discover_v his_o intention_n for_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n to_o the_o spaniard_n which_o also_o his_o treacherous_a attempt_n in_o spain_n among_o the_o student_n have_v make_v more_o manifest_a by_o have_v they_o to_o subscribe_v to_o that_o title_n and_o by_o thrust_v they_o into_o the_o invader_n ship_n and_o all_o which_o here_o be_v saidin_fw-fr commendation_n of_o that_o book_n be_v and_o will_v be_v sufficient_o answer_v by_o those_o who_o have_v undertake_v to_o answer_v it_o and_o thus_o also_o be_v satisfaction_n give_v to_o the_o four_o matter_n against_o which_o this_o author_n take_v exception_n as_o against_o a_o manifest_a calumniation_n for_o his_o letter_n have_v be_v intercept_v and_o show_v to_o diverse_a although_o they_o be_v not_o put_v in_o print_n and_o in_o a_o late_a book_n entitle_v a_o manifestation_n of_o spirit_n there_o be_v some_o fear_n show_v that_o his_o letter_n to_o the_o earl_n of_o anguise_n be_v intercept_v the_o five_o calumniation_n he_o say_v may_v be_v divide_v into_o many_o part_n but_o to_o quit_v the_o accuser_n he_o tell_v his_o reader_n that_o the_o temporal_a magistrate_n do_v not_o press_v the_o priest_n but_o favour_v they_o rather_o which_o of_o late_o be_v very_o true_a since_o they_o have_v know_v the_o difference_n between_o priest_n and_o statist_n although_o the_o favour_n be_v not_o so_o great_a as_o it_o may_v be_v and_o may_v be_v when_o her_o majesty_n may_v be_v thorough_o inform_v of_o the_o priest_n their_o truth_n and_o loyalty_n to_o her_o person_n crown_n estate_n and_o dignity_n yet_o have_v not_o the_o priest_n use_v this_o little_a favour_n which_o they_o have_v have_v to_o the_o afflict_v any_o of_o their_o catholic_a brethren_n in_o durance_n as_o here_o it_o be_v most_o malicious_o suggest_v but_o to_o the_o comfort_n of_o many_o for_o answer_v to_o the_o sixth_o accusation_n against_o f._n parson_n the_o reader_n must_v go_v look_n in_o the_o eight_o chapter_n whither_o we_o also_o do_v refer_v the_o reader_n for_o answer_v to_o what_o be_v there_o bring_v by_o this_o author_n now_o follow_v a_o defence_n of_o father_n parson_n against_o what_o be_v relate_v in_o the_o latin_a book_n of_o the_o usage_n of_o the_o two_o priest_n that_o go_v to_o rome_n and_o this_o fellow_n say_v all_o out_o of_o authentical_a information_n as_o first_o that_o father_n parson_n do_v
the_o matter_n they_o do_v add_v of_o their_o own_o in_o their_o english_a translation_n the_o word_n here_o which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o latin_a to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v seem_v to_o tie_v the_o protector_n office_n to_o the_o place_n itself_o which_o be_v most_o absurd_a to_o any_o man_n that_o will_v consider_v the_o meaning_n of_o these_o word_n which_o be_v that_o the_o protector_n office_n be_v give_v over_o any_o nation_n order_n of_o religion_n or_o the_o like_a to_o protect_v or_o defend_v they_o in_o all_o occasion_n with_o his_o holiness_n and_o his_o successor_n understand_v by_o the_o word_n sea_n apostolic_a whether_o it_o be_v in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n or_o out_o of_o rome_n for_o when_o the_o pope_n lie_v at_o auignon_n in_o france_n for_o example_n sake_n yet_o be_v the_o office_n of_o protector_n also_o in_o use_n and_o when_o cardinal_n caietane_n our_o late_a protector_n be_v legate_n in_o france_n and_o polonia_n his_o office_n of_o protectorship_n cease_v not_o whensoever_o he_o will_v deal_v in_o any_o matter_n etc._n etc._n and_o this_o be_v sufficient_a for_o this_o first_o point_n which_o seem_v to_o include_v both_o folly_n and_o audacity_n in_o this_o story_n be_v first_o to_o be_v answer_v why_o apud_fw-la nos_fw-la be_v thus_o translate_v here_o with_o we_o but_o i_o will_v leave_v this_o to_o grammar_n boy_n who_o know_v that_o this_o word_n apud_fw-la do_v import_v a_o place_n consequent_o in_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o the_o signification_n and_o as_o i_o think_v never_o until_o this_o day_n be_v this_o translation_n judge_v faulty_a est_fw-la apud_fw-la i_o he_o be_v here_o with_o i_o or_o est_fw-la apud_fw-la illum_fw-la he_o be_v there_o with_o he_o and_o it_o can_v but_o argue_v a_o great_a will_n in_o the_o appendix-maker_n than_o power_n to_o find_v a_o fault_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o story_n be_v as_o absurd_a for_o who_o do_v ever_o say_v that_o a_o protector_n do_v leave_v his_o office_n when_o he_o be_v out_o of_o rome_n the_o priest_n word_n be_v that_o it_o do_v not_o stretch_v further_o than_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v true_a although_o the_o protector_n be_v in_o polonia_n for_o although_o he_o be_v there_o in_o person_n yet_o may_v he_o deal_v by_o letter_n in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o at_o rome_n and_o all_o this_o while_n although_o the_o man_n who_o have_v authority_n be_v far_o from_o rome_n yet_o his_o authority_n in_o that_o kind_n stretch_v itself_o to_o deal_v no_o further_o then_o in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o put_v the_o case_n that_o the_o pope_n shall_v go_v again_o to_o auignon_n and_o come_v no_o more_o at_o rome_n this_o fellow_n will_v not_o deny_v that_o he_o remain_v still_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o as_o bishop_n of_o that_o sea_n he_o govern_v the_o church_n and_o consequent_o there_o must_v be_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o not_o in_o rome_n for_o that_o as_o i_o take_v it_o the_o court_n be_v where_o the_o prince_n be_v and_o this_o way_n also_o be_v the_o word_n true_a which_o be_v use_v that_o the_o protector_n office_n stretch_v not_o itself_o any_o further_a than_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n wheresoever_o that_o court_n be_v keep_v and_o this_o be_v sufficient_a for_o to_o show_v the_o folly_n and_o audacity_n of_o the_o appendix-maker_n who_o will_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o correct_v what_o it_o seem_v he_o understand_v not_o in_o hoc_fw-la consistorio_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o this_o consistory_n that_o be_v the_o college_n of_o cardinal_n or_o the_o pope_n counsel_n say_v zechi_n de_fw-fr statu_fw-la illust_n d._n card._n num._n 9_o every_o province_n and_o congregation_n of_o regular_o and_o king_n have_v their_o father_n guardian_n which_o be_v call_v protector_n who_o in_o the_o consistory_n do_v propound_v the_o election_n and_o other_o cause_n of_o the_o province_n commit_v unto_o they_o and_o answer_v to_o those_o who_o oppose_v against_o they_o and_o for_o the_o second_o say_v he_o about_o demur_v upon_o his_o holiness_n letter_n we_o judge_v it_o to_o be_v of_o much_o more_o importance_n and_o far_o more_o perilous_a yea_o temerarious_a doctrine_n for_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o any_o man_n as_o our_o brethren_n here_o aver_v to_o demur_v upon_o his_o holiness_n letter_n with_o mind_n to_o give_v a_o reasonable_a cause_n thereof_o afterward_o what_o end_n will_v there_o be_v of_o strife_n what_o obedience_n what_o resignation_n of_o will_n and_o judgement_n to_o our_o superior_n commandment_n etc._n etc._n see_v how_o this_o ignorant_a companion_n urge_v it_o as_o perilous_a and_o temerarius_fw-la doctrine_n notwithstanding_o he_o be_v show_v in_o the_o hope_n of_o peace_n that_o it_o be_v most_o catholic_a doctrine_n and_o according_a to_o the_o ordinance_n of_o holy_a church_n and_o he_o be_v refer_v for_o his_o learning_n to_o the_o order_n of_o pope_n alexander_n the_o three_o cap._n siquando_fw-la de_fw-la rescriptis_fw-la where_o the_o pope_n write_v in_o this_o manner_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o ravenna_n si_fw-mi quando_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o at_o any_o time_n we_o direct_v any_o thing_n to_o your_o brotherhood_n which_o may_v seem_v to_o exasperate_v your_o mind_n you_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v trouble_v and_o afterward_o have_v consider_v upon_o the_o quality_n of_o that_o business_n for_o which_o you_o be_v write_v unto_o either_o reverent_o fulfil_v our_o commandment_n or_o signify_v some_o reasonable_a cause_n by_o your_o letter_n why_o you_o can_v fulfil_v it_o for_o we_o will_v bear_v it_o patient_o if_o you_o shall_v not_o do_v that_o which_o have_v be_v or_o shall_v be_v suggest_v unto_o we_o by_o evil_a insinuation_n there_o be_v in_o the_o same_o place_n another_o say_n of_o the_o same_o pope_n cite_v cap._n cùm_fw-la teneamur_fw-la de_fw-la prebendis_fw-la &_o dignit_v to_o the_o same_o effect_n and_o this_o poor_a fellow_n not_o be_v able_a to_o make_v any_o answer_n hereunto_o tell_v his_o blind_a obedient_a a_o tale_n of_o obedience_n as_o though_o this_o pope_n alexander_n have_v exhort_v man_n to_o disobedience_n when_o he_o tell_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v give_v he_o a_o cause_n by_o their_o letter_n why_o they_o do_v not_o or_o can_v not_o do_v as_o they_o be_v command_v by_o he_o in_o the_o eleven_o leaf_n for_o want_n of_o matter_n in_o the_o hope_n of_o peace_n he_o fall_v into_o the_o copy_n of_o discourse_n and_o according_a to_o the_o erroneous_a vain_a in_o which_o he_o be_v in_o the_o apology_n he_o except_v against_o that_o which_o be_v say_v by_o the_o priest_n that_o authority_n be_v not_o a_o infallible_a rule_n of_o truth_n in_o all_o who_o have_v authority_n and_o out_o of_o that_o which_o be_v say_v that_o but_o one_o upon_o earth_n be_v warrant_v from_o error_n and_o not_o he_o in_o all_o thing_n and_o hereupon_o he_o infer_v thus_o how_o say_v he_o can_v our_o english_a people_n assure_v themselves_o but_o that_o this_o institution_n of_o the_o archpriest_n be_v one_o of_o the_o thing_n wherein_o he_o may_v err_v by_o what_o law_n logic_n or_o divinity_n can_v this_o fellow_n show_v that_o his_o holiness_n can_v upon_o false_a information_n do_v a_o great_a matter_n than_o the_o confirmation_n of_o a_o archpriest_n in_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o archpriest_n it_o be_v wont_v to_o be_v no_o temerarious_a or_o perilous_a doctrine_n to_o affirm_v that_o a_o pope_n can_v commit_v a_o sin_n which_o be_v a_o great_a matter_n than_o not_o to_o be_v well_o advise_v in_o the_o institution_n of_o a_o archpriest_n for_o the_o sin_n grow_v of_o frailty_n in_o the_o man_n and_o evil_a advice_n or_o information_n by_o which_o the_o archpriest_n be_v institute_v in_o his_o office_n may_v come_v from_o another_o in_o who_o his_o holiness_n may_v repose_v a_o trust_n and_o be_v deceive_v all_o the_o rest_n which_o follow_v in_o this_o eleven_o lease_n be_v often_o answer_v in_o the_o priest_n book_n and_o late_o more_o at_o large_a by_o m._n doctor_n ely_n in_o his_o note_n upon_o the_o apology_n and_o by_o m._n collington_n in_o his_o just_a defence_n etc._n etc._n and_o there_o be_v a_o reason_n give_v in_o the_o place_n quote_v in_o the_o 11._o leaf_n of_o that_o which_o be_v there_o bring_v out_o of_o the_o hope_n of_o peace_n and_o the_o fault_n or_o disgrace_n which_o this_o fellow_n will_v shall_v light_v upon_o his_o holiness_n concern_v the_o institution_n of_o the_o archpriest_n in_o that_o manner_n that_o it_o be_v the_o priest_n have_v always_o lay_v upon_o the_o informer_n who_o procure_v such_o deal_n as_o be_v in_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a moment_n neither_o have_v the_o priest_n challenge_v the_o ordination_n at_o any_o time_n for_o a_o matter_n of_o plot_n as_o proceed_v from_o his_o holiness_n but_o as_o it_o proceed_v from_o the_o jesuit_n who_o be_v know_v to_o
well_o know_v to_o have_v be_v long_o after_o the_o doctor_n his_o departure_n from_o rome_n his_o persuasion_n be_v upon_o a_o very_a weak_a ground_n for_o although_o such_o article_n may_v be_v give_v or_o send_v to_o m._n charnocke_v under_o his_o hand_n to_o carry_v to_o rome_n yet_o these_o article_n may_v come_v from_o some_o other_o the_o memorial_n be_v long_o before_o make_v and_o at_o rome_n as_o appear_v in_o this_o apology_n fol._n 94._o where_o also_o do._n barret_n affirm_v that_o he_o find_v a_o little_a compendious_a note_n of_o all_o their_o article_n against_o the_o jesuit_n at_o rome_n which_o say_v he_o he_o fisher_n carry_v with_o he_o to_o dilate_v to_o the_o faction_n in_o england_n and_o for_o proof_n hereof_o he_o add_v as_o appear_v for_o it_o be_v very_o old_a and_o almost_o wear_v out_o all_o the_o foolish_a story_n of_o fisher_n we_o here_o leave_v out_o as_o not_o worth_a the_o note_n he_o have_v be_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o this_o author_n fol._n 93._o one_o of_o the_o most_o exorbitant_a disorderly_a fellow_n in_o the_o roman_a stir_n and_o fol._n 95._o albeit_o say_v this_o author_n we_o will_v not_o affirm_v all_o to_o be_v true_a which_o he_o say_v yet_o many_o thing_n be_v such_o as_o they_o can_v not_o be_v well_o feign_v and_o be_v confirm_v otherwise_o and_o the_o speak_v voluntary_o upon_o his_o oath_n must_v be_v presume_v to_o have_v have_v some_o care_n also_o of_o his_o conscience_n etc._n etc._n or_o of_o his_o side_n as_o himself_o confess_v at_o paris_n but_o i_o pray_v you_o let_v there_o be_v care_n of_o conscience_n at_o the_o lest_o with_o a_o etc._n etc._n in_o such_o matter_n as_o may_v make_v for_o the_o jesuit_n some_o thing_n here_o set_v down_o be_v not_o only_o false_a but_o so_o impertinent_a to_o the_o matter_n as_o we_o can_v but_o judge_v that_o there_o be_v much_o good_a juggle_n between_o he_o &_o his_o examiner_n as_o that_o which_o be_v affirm_v fol._n 96._o at_o london_n i_o lay_v common_o with_o m._n charnock_n otherwise_o call_v long_o and_o m._n medcalfe_n whereas_o the_o poor_a man_n be_v never_o in_o any_o such_o credit_n with_o either_o of_o they_o as_o that_o he_o be_v acquaint_v where_o either_o of_o they_o lay_v yet_o some_o thing_n at_o the_o least_o can_v not_o be_v well_o feign_v perchance_o that_o be_v bid_v to_o a_o banquet_n at_o wisbich_n he_o have_v a_o swan_n which_o be_v the_o more_o to_o be_v note_v because_o it_o be_v a_o very_a unusual_a dish_n at_o a_o banquet_n unless_o we_o turn_v the_o banquet_n into_o a_o dinner_n and_o then_o the_o grace_n of_o this_o relation_n be_v mar_v for_o the_o reader_n must_v conceive_v that_o the_o priest_n in_o wisbich_n do_v not_o dine_v that_o be_v too_o gross_a but_o they_o do_v banquet_n and_o he_o must_v understand_v that_o the_o priest_n have_v a_o swan_n at_o that_o banquet_n certain_o either_o fisher_n do_v herein_o show_v himself_o to_o be_v too_o weak_a a_o man_n to_o be_v bring_v here_o for_o a_o authentical_a witness_n unless_o some_o such_o particular_a question_n as_o this_o be_v be_v demand_v of_o he_o what_o good_a cheer_n have_v you_o or_o else_o the_o examiner_n be_v exceed_v foolish_a who_o in_o a_o serious_a matter_n will_v fall_v into_o such_o question_n and_o set_v down_o such_o stuff_n in_o a_o examination_n but_o have_v not_o such_o folly_n be_v to_o be_v utter_v we_o shall_v have_v have_v no_o apology_n one_o thing_n more_o be_v here_o to_o be_v note_v that_o fol._n 96._o this_o author_n relate_v out_o of_o fisher_n examination_n that_o there_o pass_v eight_o or_o nine_o month_n in_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n and_o that_o he_o go_v seven_o or_o eight_o time_n from_o the_o north_n part_n to_o wisbich_n cambridge_n and_o london_n about_o a_o affair_n which_o will_v not_o well_o stand_v with_o the_o association_n then_o begin_v which_o be_v compare_v with_o that_o which_o be_v also_o affirm_v fol._n 97._o where_n it_o be_v say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o know_v at_o his_o departure_n from_o england_n that_o peace_n be_v make_v at_o rome_n or_o that_o fa._n parson_n be_v come_v thither_o albeit_o m._n bagshaw_n and_o his_o friend_n seem_v to_o fear_v it_o much_o this_o author_n must_v wipe_v his_o mouth_n for_o his_o false_a tale_n tell_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n fol._n 6._o and_o 7._o where_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o relic_n of_o those_o that_o have_v be_v troublesome_a and_o unquiet_a before_o come_v into_o england_n and_o confer_v again_o with_o their_o consort_n of_o their_o former_a action_n and_o designment_n frustrate_v as_o they_o think_v by_o fa._n parson_n deal_v at_o rome_n resolve_v to_o begin_v again_o but_o after_o another_o fashion_n to_o wit_n by_o devise_v a_o certain_a new_a association_n etc._n etc._n do_v these_o man_n who_o be_v thus_o frustrate_v at_o rome_n by_o f._n parson_n his_o deal_n there_o know_v that_o fa._n parson_n be_v come_v to_o rome_n trow_v you_o if_o they_o do_v know_v thereof_o and_o be_v in_o england_n before_o fisher_n departure_n from_o england_n how_o be_v it_o unknowen_a there_o at_o his_o departure_n thence_o that_o f._n parson_n be_v come_v to_o rome_n if_o they_o know_v thereof_o but_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o come_v into_o england_n before_o fisher_n departure_n from_o thence_o how_o do_v fisher_n go_v seven_o or_o eight_o time_n from_o the_o north_n part_n to_o wisbich_n cambridge_n and_o london_n about_o the_o affair_n he_o speak_v of_o in_o which_o the_o association_n have_v cause_v diversity_n of_o opinion_n for_o if_o this_o author_n be_v a_o honest_a man_n those_o man_n who_o be_v say_v in_o his_o first_o chapter_n fol._n 6._o and_o 7._o to_o have_v be_v frustrate_v as_o they_o think_v by_o f._n parson_n deal_v in_o rome_n resolve_v to_o begin_v again_o by_o devise_v a_o certain_a new_a association_n etc._n etc._n but_o perchance_o fisher_n dream_v that_o he_o be_v employ_v in_o such_o business_n in_o england_n and_o how_o that_o he_o have_v a_o swan_n at_o a_o banquet_n in_o wisbich_n and_o lay_v at_o london_n with_o m._n charnocke_n and_o m._n heburne_n and_o much_o other_o good_a news_n and_o this_o author_n put_v down_o his_o dream_n as_o a_o authentical_a testimony_n for_o want_v of_o other_o stuff_n and_o if_o he_o have_v not_o dream_v himself_o when_o he_o set_v it_o down_o doubtless_o he_o will_v have_v omit_v so_o much_o at_o the_o least_o as_o if_o one_o dreamer_n may_v convince_v another_o of_o falsehood_n convince_v he_o most_o manifest_o of_o fault_n in_o his_o relation_n of_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o association_n set_v down_o in_o his_o first_o chapter_n as_o we_o have_v note_v but_o by_o this_o say_v the_o apology_n any_o indifferent_a man_n may_v see_v how_o matter_n stand_v and_o where_o the_o ground_n of_o all_o trouble_n and_o dissension_n lie_v all_o be_v but_o a_o conspiracy_n of_o evil_a humour_n against_o they_o that_o do_v better_a than_o themselves_o and_o every_o man_n that_o love_v his_o soul_n will_v soon_o descry_v the_o same_o religion_n be_v not_o seek_v by_o this_o faction_n but_o revenge_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o bad_a appetite_n this_o write_v he_o who_o know_v well_o what_o he_o say_v although_o his_o ungratiousnesse_n will_v have_v his_o reader_n apply_v it_o to_o other_o and_o not_o to_o he_o who_o deserve_v it_o as_o have_v be_v show_v and_o will_v still_o appear_v in_o every_o chapter_n more_o clear_o than_o other_o and_o in_o this_o vain_a he_o tell_v his_o reader_n that_o his_o holiness_n clear_o perceive_v take_v order_n first_o in_o the_o roman_a college_n which_o belong_v to_o another_o place_n and_o then_o in_o england_n for_o remedy_n thereof_o as_o hereafter_o you_o shall_v hear_v and_o so_o he_o set_v himself_o to_o the_o eight_o chapter_n where_o at_o the_o very_a first_o he_o do_v notable_o abuse_v his_o reader_n as_o shall_v be_v show_v and_o he_o convince_v of_o most_o manifest_a falsehood_n and_o to_o be_v a_o chief_a man_n in_o the_o conspiracy_n of_o evil_a humour_n against_o such_o man_n as_o seek_v religion_n with_o the_o great_a hazard_n of_o their_o life_n when_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n be_v idle_a looker_n on_o and_o will_v be_v no_o actor_n until_o room_n be_v make_v for_o their_o fatherhood_n chap._n 13._o how_o the_o author_n of_o the_o apology_n to_o cloak_n the_o jesuit_n their_o deal_n concern_v the_o institution_n of_o the_o new_a subordination_n persuade_v his_o reader_n that_o his_o holiness_n be_v move_v thereto_o by_o certain_a letter_n which_o be_v long_o after_o write_v apol._n cap._n 8._o in_o the_o 8._o chapter_n of_o the_o apology_n the_o author_n propose_v to_o handle_v how_o his_o holiness_n hear_v of_o the_o former_a disorder_n and_o contention_n do_v resolve_v to_o make_v a_o subordination_n in_o england_n
and_o how_o it_o be_v ordain_v and_o intimate_v by_o the_o protector_n &_o call_v in_o question_n by_o some_o discontent_a brethren_n without_o reason_n or_o authority_n and_o how_o great_a trouble_n have_v ensue_v thereof_o and_o first_o he_o begin_v to_o declare_v the_o motive_n or_o cause_n of_o this_o subordination_n in_o this_o manner_n when_o his_o holiness_n hear_v the_o former_a state_n of_o matter_n in_o england_n flanders_n and_o other_o place_n and_o of_o the_o murmuration_n of_o some_o against_o the_o father_n of_o the_o society_n set_v down_o as_o well_o in_o the_o aforesaid_a contumelious_a memorial_n as_o by_o diverse_a other_o letter_n and_o relation_n which_o come_v to_o the_o protector_n sight_n and_o by_o he_o be_v relate_v to_o his_o holiness_n and_o namely_o when_o he_o receive_v great_a store_n of_o private_a and_o public_a letter_n out_o of_o england_n against_o the_o say_a memorial_n of_o fisher_n and_o some_o one_o with_o above_o 100_o hand_n at_o it_o other_o with_o 40._o and_o 50._o all_o in_o favour_n and_o commendation_n of_o the_o father_n their_o labour_n and_o behaviour_n in_o england_n against_o the_o say_a slanderous_a memorial_n and_o in_o the_o margin_n there_o be_v this_o note_n see_v the_o letter_n of_o the_o northern_a priest_n 24._o martij_fw-la 1598._o and_o other_o 20_o of_o april_n and_o other_o after_o 30._o july_n and_o other_o of_o the_o south_n in_o great_a number_n 18_o of_o may_n and_o of_o the_o quiet_a sort_n of_o wisbich_n 27._o of_o march_n 1598._o it_o follow_v in_o the_o text_n and_o many_o other_o in_o several_a letter_n of_o principal_a man_n which_o be_v yet_o extant_a but_o be_v not_o yet_o to_o be_v see_v when_o also_o diverse_a of_o these_o do_v express_o demand_v some_o subordination_n and_o government_n of_o secular_a priest_n to_o take_v away_o this_o emulation_n of_o some_o few_o against_o the_o father_n as_o though_o all_o but_o a_o few_o will_v have_v have_v they_o to_o have_v be_v their_o master_n and_o that_o two_o late_o come_v out_o of_o england_n at_o this_o very_a time_n one_o a_o jesuit_n the_o other_o a_o secular_a priest_n bate_v i_o a_o ace_n quoth_v he_o for_o m._n standish_n have_v give_v his_o name_n before_o to_o become_v a_o jesuite_n and_o therefore_o a_o vassal_n of_o they_o although_o he_o retain_v still_o the_o habit_n of_o a_o secular_a priest_n that_o under_o that_o habit_n he_o may_v the_o more_o cunning_o deceive_v his_o holiness_n each_o of_o they_o urge_v the_o same_o in_o behalf_n of_o the_o one_o and_o other_o order_n a_o couple_n of_o fit_a proctor_n for_o the_o purpose_n but_o when_o all_o this_o be_v do_v what_o then_o forsooth_o his_o holiness_n after_o mature_a deliberation_n resolve_v to_o yield_v thereunto_o hope_v hereby_o to_o quiet_a all_o as_o well_o for_o that_o the_o secular_a priest_n shall_v by_o this_o mean_n have_v governor_n of_o their_o own_o as_o also_o for_o that_o the_o father_n by_o all_o likelihood_n shall_v remain_v free_a from_o all_o matter_n of_o calumniation_n about_o govern_v secular_a priest_n for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v how_o currant_n will_v this_o tale_n be_v if_o one_o of_o the_o most_o necessary_a matter_n there_o be_v not_o that_o the_o archpriest_n must_v advise_v still_o with_o the_o jesuit_n in_o his_o great_a affair_n for_o so_o he_o be_v command_v in_o his_o instruction_n and_o consequent_o the_o father_n by_o all_o likelihood_n do_v not_o remain_v free_a from_o all_o manner_n of_o calumniation_n as_o he_o term_v it_o about_o govern_v secular_a priest_n and_o doubtless_o if_o it_o be_v a_o calumniation_n to_o say_v the_o father_n do_v govern_v the_o secular_a priest_n what_o be_v it_o when_o they_o be_v not_o say_v to_o govern_v but_o do_v real_o govern_v by_o order_n as_o be_v say_v from_o his_o holiness_n in_o great_a matter_n and_o of_o their_o own_o great_a devotion_n in_o all_o other_o by_o the_o archpriest_n his_o blind_a obedience_n unto_o they_o but_o now_o to_o the_o main_a motive_n of_o this_o subordination_n and_o that_o which_o cause_v his_o holiness_n to_o consult_v for_o some_o month_n and_o to_o seek_v for_o information_n out_o of_o england_n of_o the_o quiet_a at_o the_o least_o for_o the_o fit_a man_n for_o government_n as_o this_o author_n immediate_o sugge_v we_o must_v conceive_v some_o such_o strange_a miracle_n as_o that_o there_o be_v some_o extraordinary_a day_n week_n or_o month_n in_o which_o this_o motive_n be_v make_v consultation_n have_v and_o information_n give_v in_o this_o chapter_n fol._n 102._o it_o be_v confess_v and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o it_o will_v be_v otherwise_o prove_v that_o the_o cardinal_n letter_n by_o which_o the_o authority_n be_v institute_v do_v bear_v date_n the_o seven_o of_o march_n in_o the_o year_n 1598._o this_o then_o be_v dispatch_v at_o that_o time_n what_o time_n will_v a_o reasonable_a man_n have_v allow_v for_o the_o travail_v of_o the_o motive_n thereof_o out_o of_o england_n to_o rome_n how_o many_o will_v he_o guess_v those_o month_n to_o be_v which_o be_v here_o say_v by_o this_o author_n that_o his_o hol._n take_v to_o consult_v and_o to_o have_v intelligence_n from_o the_o quiet_a in_o england_n of_o the_o fit_a man_n for_o government_n and_o can_v hear_v but_o of_o seven_o in_o all_o england_n whereof_o one_o be_v dead_a to_o wit_n m._n d._n henshaw_n the_o sun_n who_o keep_v his_o course_n in_o england_n and_o see_v how_o the_o jesuite_n be_v calumniate_v as_o man_n that_o will_v govern_v the_o secular_a priest_n stay_v his_o course_n at_o rome_n for_o the_o space_n of_o five_o or_o six_o month_n and_o whereas_o the_o roman_n have_v get_v the_o start_n of_o we_o in_o england_n for_o some_o ten_o day_n in_o the_o course_n of_o the_o year_n now_o the_o english_a have_v get_v the_o start_n of_o they_o and_o make_v their_o seven_o day_n of_o march_n come_v many_o month_n after_o we_o for_o as_o it_o be_v say_v this_o authority_n be_v make_v at_o rome_n upon_o the_o seven_o of_o march_n 1598._o and_o it_o be_v make_v upon_o certain_a information_n as_o appear_v here_o in_o the_o margin_n fol._n 98._o which_o be_v send_v out_o of_o england_n some_o the_o 24_o of_o march_n some_o the_o 27_o some_o the_o 20_o of_o april_n some_o the_o 18_o of_o may_n some_o the_o 30_o of_o july_n in_o the_o same_o year_n 1598._o to_o which_o if_o we_o shall_v allow_v a_o time_n for_o the_o motive_n to_o travail_v to_o rome_n and_o some_o month_n for_o his_o holiness_n to_o consult_v and_o send_v back_o again_o into_o england_n for_o information_n of_o the_o fit_a man_n for_o government_n i_o trow_v the_o same_o will_v have_v rest_v himself_o well_o at_o rome_n howsoever_o he_o labour_v elsewhere_o to_o have_v a_o authority_n institute_v upon_o these_o motive_n consultation_n and_o information_n upon_o the_o seven_o of_o march_n at_o rome_n in_o the_o same_o year_n 1598._o and_o lest_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v idle_a at_o rome_n any_o time_n of_o this_o long_a day_n in_o rome_n also_o say_v this_o author_n the_o opinion_n be_v ask_v by_o the_o protector_n of_o the_o principal_a english_a that_o reside_v there_o and_o can_v best_o inform_v as_o namely_o father_n parson_n that_o have_v often_o advice_n from_o thence_o from_o his_o fellow_n jesuit_n and_o therefore_o can_v the_o better_o inform_v for_o his_o own_o purpose_n fa._n baldwin_n late_o come_v from_o england_n a_o jolly_a bold_a young_a fellow_n but_o a_o jesuite_n and_o therefore_o a_o principal_a man_n m._n d._n haddock_n m._n martin_n array_n who_o fair_a game_n be_v to_o please_v the_o jesuit_n m._n james_n standish_n who_o have_v give_v his_o name_n to_o the_o jesuit_n to_o become_v one_o of_o their_o order_n and_o other_o that_o have_v labour_v in_o the_o english_a vineyard_n perchance_o fa._n warford_n who_o be_v become_v also_o a_o jesuite_n and_o help_v to_o make_v up_o a_o very_a fit_a jury_n to_o pass_v upon_o the_o priest_n as_o also_o m._n thomas_n allen_n nephew_n to_o the_o late_a cardinal_n and_o diverse_a else_o not_o worthy_a the_o name_n yet_o may_v very_o well_o be_v of_o the_o council_n the_o plot_n be_v so_o wise_o cast_v who_o concur_v with_o the_o opinion_n of_o letter_n come_v out_o of_o england_n he_o have_v before_o tell_v you_o what_o letter_n and_o when_o they_o be_v write_v some_o of_o they_o in_o april_n some_o in_o may_n some_o in_o july_n as_o also_o with_o diverse_a other_o principal_a man_n that_o write_v thereof_o from_o spain_n flanders_n and_o other_o place_n some_o divine_a intelligencer_n both_o of_o the_o necessity_n of_o some_o subordination_n to_o be_v make_v they_o have_v belike_o understand_v of_o the_o jesuit_n their_o ambitious_a humour_n wherewith_o they_o have_v begin_v to_o trouble_v all_o england_n namely_o about_o their_o insolent_a agencie_n in_o wisbich_n